The day's play

By A. A. Milne

The Project Gutenberg eBook of The day's play
    
This ebook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
of the Project Gutenberg License included with this ebook or online
at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States,
you will have to check the laws of the country where you are located
before using this eBook.

Title: The day's play


Author: A. A. Milne

Release date: September 13, 2023 [eBook #71638]

Language: English

Original publication: London: Methuen & Co. Ltd, 1910

Credits: Al Haines


*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DAY'S PLAY ***






  THE DAY'S PLAY


  BY

  A. A. MILNE


  THIRD EDITION


  METHUEN & CO. LTD.
  36 ESSEX STREET W.C.
  LONDON




  First Published ... September 22nd 1910
  Second Edition ... December 1910
  Third Edition ... January 1921




  TO
  R. C. LEHMANN
  MY CHIEF CREDITOR
  THIS
  TRIFLE ON ACCOUNT




[Transcriber's note: The main headings below were in the source book.
The secondary ones were added for reader convenience.]


CONTENTS


THE RABBITS
  Part I
  Part II

MARGERY
  To Margery--from her Uncle
  Margery's Sock
  How to Play the Pianola
  The Knight of the Chimney-piece
  The Art of Conversation
  Afternoon Sleep

JOCK

MORE CRICKET
  To an Old Bat
  A Scratch Lot
  Ex Nihilo fit Multum
  An Average Man

SMALL GAMES
  Physical Culture
  Croquet
  Gardening
  Golf
  Stump Cricket
  Exploring
  Shopping
  Chess
  Progressive Bridge
  Dressing Up
  After Dinner

BACHELOR DAYS
  The Butter
  The Washing
  Taking Stock
  Medes and Persians
  The Cupboard
  The Post Bag
  Going Out
  The Sidesman
  An Awkward Case
  Reverie
  Retrospect

LETTERS TO CHARLES




NOTE.--All the Articles and Verses in this book have previously
appeared in _Punch_.  To the Editor for printing them, and the
Proprietors for permitting me to reprint them, I shall always be
grateful.

A. A. M.




THE RABBITS



PART I


CHAPTER I

INTRODUCING THE LOP-EARED ONES AND OTHERS

"By Hobbs," cried Archie, as he began to put away the porridge, "I
feel as fit as anything this morning.  I'm absolutely safe for a
century."

"You shouldn't boast with your mouth full," Myra told her brother.

"It wasn't quite full," pleaded Archie, "and I really am good for
runs to-day."

"You will make," I said, "exactly fourteen."

"Hallo, good-morning.  Didn't see you were there."

"I have been here all the time.  Fourteen."

"It seems a lot," said Myra doubtfully.

Archie laughed in scorn.

"The incoming batsman," I began, "who seemed in no way daunted by the
position of affairs----"

"Five hundred for nine," put in Myra.

"--reached double figures for the fourth time this season, with a
lofty snick to the boundary.  Then turning his attention to the slow
bowler he despatched him between his pads and the wicket for a
couple.  This, however, was his last scoring stroke, as in the same
over he played forward to a long hop and fell a victim to the
vigilance of the wicket-keeper."

"For nearly a quarter of an hour," continued Myra, "he had defied the
attack, and the character of his batting may be easily judged from
the fact that his score included one five----"

"Four from an overthrow," I added in parenthesis.

"And one four.  Save for a chance to mid-on before he had scored, and
another in the slips when seven, his innings was almost entirely free
from blemish----"

"Although on one occasion he had the good fortune, when playing back
to a half-volley, to strike the wicket without dislodging the bails."

"See to-morrow's _Sportsman_," concluded Myra.

"Oh, you children," laughed Archie, as he walked over to inspect the
ham.  "Bless you."

Miss Fortescue gave a little cough and began to speak.  Miss
Fortescue is one of those thoroughly good girls who take an interest
in everything.  A genuine trier.  On this occasion she said: "I often
wonder who it is who writes those accounts in _The Sportsman_."

"It is believed to be Mr Simpson," said Archie.

Simpson looked up with a start, and jerked his glasses into his tea.
He fished them out and wiped them thoughtfully.

"The credible," he began, "is rarely----"

"Gentlemen, I pray you silence for Mr Simpson's epigram," cried
Archie.

"Oh, I always thought Mr Simpson wrote verses in _The Saturday
Review_," said Miss Fortescue in the silence which followed.

"As a relaxation only," I explained.  "The other is his life-work.
We read him with great interest; that bit about the heavy roller
being requisitioned is my favourite line."

"Mr Simpson and Killick and Crawford all play in glasses," put in
Myra eagerly, across the table.

"That is their only point in common," added Archie.

"Oh, isn't he a very good player?"

"Well, he's a thoroughly honest and punctual and sober player," I
said, "but--the fact is, he and I and the Major don't make many runs
nowadays.  We generally give, as he has said in one of his less
popular poems, a local habitation to the--er--airy nothing."

"I thought it was Shakespeare said that."

"Shakespeare or Simpson.  Hallo, there's Thomas at last."

Thomas is in the Admiralty, which is why he is always late.  It is a
great pity that he was christened Thomas; he can never rise to the
top of his profession with a name like that.  You couldn't imagine a
Thomas McKenna--or even a Thomas Nelson, but he doesn't seem to mind
somehow.

"Morning, everybody," said Thomas.  "Isn't it a beastly day?"

"We'll hoist the south cone for you," said Archie, and he balanced a
mushroom upside down on the end of his fork.

"What's the matter with the day?" asked our host, the Major, still
intent on his paper.

"It's so early."

"When I was a boy----"

"My father, Major Mannering," said Archie, "will now relate an
anecdote of Waterloo."

But the Major was deep in his paper.  Suddenly he--there is only one
word for it--snorted.

"The Budget," said Myra and Archie, exchanging anxious glances.

"Ha, that's good," he said, "that's very good!  'If the Chancellor of
the Exchequer imagines that he can make his iniquitous Budget more
acceptable to a disgusted public by treating it in a spirit of airy
persiflage he is at liberty to try.  But airy persiflage, when
brought into contact with the determined temper of a nation----'"

"Who is the hairy Percy, anyhow?" said Thomas to himself.

The Major glared at the interrupter for a moment.  Then--for he knows
his weakness, and is particularly fond of Thomas--he threw his paper
down and laughed.  "Well," he said, "are we going to win to-day?"
And while he and Archie talked about the wicket his daughter removed
_The Times_ to a safe distance.

"But there aren't eleven of you, here," said Miss Fortescue to me,
"and if you and Mr Simpson and Major Mannering aren't very good
you'll be beaten.  It's against the village the first two days, isn't
it?"

"When I said we weren't very good, I only meant we didn't make many
runs.  Mr Simpson is a noted fast bowler, the Major has a M.C.C.
scarf, which can be seen quite easily at point, and I keep wicket.
Between us we dismiss many a professor.  Just as they are shaping for
a cut, you know, they catch sight of the Major's scarf, lose their
heads and give me an easy catch.  Then Archie and Thomas take
centuries, one of the gardeners bends them from the off and makes
them swim a bit, the Vicar of his plenty is lending us two sons, Tony
and Dahlia Blair come down this morning, and there is a chauffeur who
plays for keeps.  How many is that?"

"Eleven, isn't it?"

"It ought only to be ten," said Myra, who had overheard.

"Oh yes, I was counting Miss Blair," said Miss Fortescue.

"We never play more than ten a side," said Archie.

"Oh, why?"

"So as to give the scorer an extra line or two for the byes."

Myra laughed; then, catching my eye, looked preternaturally solemn.

"If you've quite finished breakfast, Mr Gaukrodger," she said,
"there'll be just time for me to beat you at croquet before the
Rabbits take the field."

"Right O," I said.

Of course, you know, my name isn't really Gaukrodger.




CHAPTER II

ON THE RUN

The Major has taken a great deal of trouble with his ground, and the
result pleases everybody.  If you are a batsman you applaud the short
boundaries; if you are a wicket-keeper (as I am), and Thomas is
bowling what he is pleased to call googlies, you have leisure to
study some delightful scenery; and if you are a left-handed bowler,
with a delivery outside the screen, there is behind you a belt of
trees which you cannot fail to admire.  When Archie was born, and
they announced the fact to the Major, his first question was (so I
understand), "Right or left handed?"  They told him "Left" to quiet
him, and he went out and planted a small forest, so that it should be
ready for Archibald's action when he grew up.  Unfortunately, Archie
turned out to be no bowler at all (in my opinion)--and right-handed
at that.  Nemesis, as the ha'penny papers say.

"Well?" we all asked, when Archie came back from tossing.

"They lost, and put us in."

"Good man."

"May I have my sixpence back?" I said.  "You haven't bent it or
anything, have you?  Thanks."

As the whole pavilion seemed to be full of people putting on their
pads in order to go in first, I wandered outside.  There I met Myra.

"Hallo, we're in," I said.  "Come and sit on the roller with me, and
I'll tell you all about Jayes."

"Can't for a moment.  Do go and make yourself pleasant to Dahlia
Blair.  She's just come."

"Do you think she'd be interested in Jayes?  I mean the
Leicestershire cricketer, not the disinfectant.  Oh, all right, then,
I won't."

I wandered over to the deck-chairs, and exchanged greetings with Miss
Blair.

"I have been asked to make myself pleasant," I said.  "I suppose that
means telling you all about everybody, doesn't it?"

"Yes, please."

"Well, we're in, as you see.  That's the Vicar leading his team out.
He's no player really--one of the 'among others we noticed.'  But
he's a good father, and we've borrowed two offsprings from him.  Here
comes Archie and Wilks.  Wilks drove you from the station, I expect?"

"He did.  And very furiously."

"Well, he hardly drives at all, when he's in.  He's terribly
slow--what they call Nature's reaction.  Archie, you will be sorry to
hear, has just distinguished himself by putting me in last.  He
called it ninth wicket down, but I worked it out, and there doesn't
seem to be anybody after me.  It's simply spite."

"I hope Mr Archie makes some runs," said Dahlia.  "I don't mind so
much about Wilks, you know."

"I'm afraid he is only going to make fourteen to-day.  That's the
postman going to bowl to him.  He has two deliveries, one at eight
A.M. and one at twelve-thirty P.M.--the second one is rather
doubtful.  Archie always takes guard with the bail, you observe, and
then looks round to see if we're all watching."

"Don't be so unkind."

"I'm annoyed," I said, "and I intensely dislike the name Archibald.
Ninth wicket down!"

The umpire having called "Play," Joe, the postman, bounded up to the
wicket and delivered the ball.  Archie played forward with the easy
confidence of a school professional when nobody is bowling to him.
And then the leg-bail disappeared.

"Oh!" cried Dahlia.  "He's out!"

I looked at her, and I looked at Archie's disconsolate back as he
made for the pavilion; and I knew what he would want.  I got up.

"I must go now," I said.  "I've promised to sit on the heavy roller
for a bit.  Archie will be here in a moment.  Will you tell him from
me that we both thought he wasn't quite ready for that one, and that
it never rose an inch?  Thank you very much."

I discovered Myra, and we sat on the roller together.

"Well, I've been making myself pleasant," I said.  "And then when
Archie got out I knew he'd want to sit next to her, so I came away.
That is what they call tact in _The Lady_."

"Archie is rather fond of her," said Myra.  "I don't know if----"

"Yes, yes, I understand.  Years ago----"

"Let's see.  Are you ninety or ninety-one?  I always forget."

"Ninety-one next St Crispin's Day.  I'm sorry Archie's out.  'The
popular cricketer was unfortunate enough to meet a trimmer first
ball, and the silent sympathy of the Bank Holiday crowd went out to
him as he wended his way to the Pavilion.'  Extract from '_Pavilions
I have wended to_, by Percy Benskin.'  Help!  There goes Blair!"

After this the situation became very serious.  In an hour seven of us
had got what I might call the postman's knock.  Wilks was still in,
but he had only made nine.  The score was fifty-two, thanks entirely
to Simpson, who had got thirty-five between first and second slip in
twenty minutes.  This stroke of his is known as the Simpson upper
cut, and is delivered straight from the shoulder and off the edge of
the bat.

"This is awful," said Myra.  "You'll simply have to make some now."

"I think it's time Wilks got on to his second speed.  Why doesn't
somebody tell him?  Hallo, there goes John.  I knew there wasn't a
run there.  Where are my gloves?"

"You mustn't be nervous.  Oh, _do_ make some."

"The condemned man walked firmly to the wickets.  'What is that,
umpire?' he asked in his usual cool voice.  'Houtside the leg stump,
sir,' said the man in white.  'Good,' he replied....  What an ass
your second gardener is.  Fancy being potted out like that, just as
if he were a geranium.  I ought to wear a cap, oughtn't I, in case I
want to bow when I come in.  Good-bye; I shall be back for lunch, I
expect."

I passed Joe on my way to the wickets, and asked pleasantly after his
wife and family.  He was rather brusque about it, and sent down a
very fast half-volley which kept low.  Then Wilks and I returned to
the pavilion together amid cheers.  On the whole, the Rabbits had
lived up to their reputation.

"Well, we _are_ a lot of bunnies," said Archie at lunch.  "Joe simply
stands there looking like a lettuce and out we all trot.  We shall
have to take to halma or something.  Simpson, you swim, don't you?"

"You don't have to swim at halma," said Simpson.

"Anyhow," said Blair, "we can't blame the Selection Committee."

"I blame Thomas," I said.  "He would have eight, and he wouldn't
wait.  I don't blame myself, because my average is now three spot
five, and yesterday it was only three spot one."

"That is impossible, if you made nought to-day," said Simpson eagerly.

"Not if I divided it wrong yesterday."

"Averages," said the Major to the Vicar, catching the last sentence
but two, "are the curse of modern cricket.  When I was a boy----"

"This," Archie explained to us, "takes us back to the thirties, when
Felix Mynn bowled Ensign Mannering with a full pilch."

"Dear old Fuller Pilch.  Ah! what do they know of England, who only
King and Jayes?" I declaimed.  "Libretto by Simpson."

"Who's finished?" said Archie, getting up.  "Come out and smoke.
Now, we simply must buck up and out the opposition.  Simpson ought to
bump them at Joe's end, and Thomas----"

"I always swerve after lunch," said Thomas.

"I don't wonder.  What I was going to say was that you would box them
in the slips.  You know, if we all buck up----"

We bucked up and outed them by the end of the day for two hundred and
fifty.




CHAPTER III

GOOD SHOOTING

"Will somebody give me a cigarette," said Myra, stretching out a hand.

"I fancy not," I said.  "Thomas and I both feel that you are too
young."

"I don't really want one, but when I'm locked up in the billiard-room
with two dumb men----"

"We were reflecting on our blessed victory."

"Were you thinking of Archie's century or John's bowling?"

"Neither, oddly enough.  I was recalling my own catch which won the
match.  Poetry; let's go and tell Simpson."

"It was a skier," said Myra.  "I thought it was never coming down.
What did you think of all the time?"

"Everything.  All my past life flashed before my eyes.  I saw again
my happy childhood's days, when I played innocently in
the--er--pantry.  I saw myself at school, sl--working.  I saw----"

"Did you happen," interrupted Thomas, when we both thought he was
fast asleep, "to see yourself being badly taken on by me at
billiards?"

"Thomas, you're not properly awake, old friend.  I know that feeling.
Turn over on the other side and take a deep breath."

Thomas rose and stretched himself, and went over to the cue rack.
"You should have heard him siding about his blessed billiards this
morning," he told Myra.

"I didn't side.  I simply said that anybody could beat Thomas.  Do
they play billiards much at the Admiralty?  I should have thought the
motion----"

"Take a cue.  Myra will mark."

"Rather; I can mark like anything."

"Once upon a time," I said, "there was a lad who wanted to get into
the Admiralty.  But his mother said, 'Not until you have learnt to
swim, Thomas.'  So he had a set of six private lessons for one guinea
before he went in for the examination.  He came out thirty-eight, and
was offered a lucrative appointment in the post office....  Hence his
enormous skill at billiards.  Thick or clear?"

"I will adventure half-a-crown upon the game," said Thomas, giving a
miss.

"Right O, Rothschild.  Now, are you ready, marker?  I'm spot.  Hadn't
you better oil the board a bit?  Well, as long as you can work it
quickly enough."

I took careful aim, and my ball went up the table and back again,
with the idea, I imagine, of inspecting the wicket.  It seemed quite
fast.

"One all," said Myra, and Thomas kindly brought his ball and mine to
the top of the table.

"I fancy I shall be able to swerve from this end," I said.  I tried a
delicate cannon, and just missed the object ball.  "I shall find a
spot directly--there's one under the red ball, I believe."

"Do try and hit something," said Myra.

"The marker is not allowed to give advice," I said sternly.  "What's
the matter, Thomas?"

"I'm not quite sure what to do."

"I think you ought to chalk your cue here," I said, after examining
the position.

"I've done that."

"Then ram the red."

Thomas rammed and all but sank it in the left-hand pocket.

"I am now," I said, "going to do a cannon off the cushion.  Marker,
what is my score?"

"One, sir."

"Then kindly get ready to put it up to three....  Rotten luck."

"Wrong side," said Myra judicially.

"No, I meant to hit it that side."

"I mean you wanted a little running side."

"This isn't Queen's Club.  Go on, Thomas."

Thomas, who had been chalking his cue, advanced to the table.
"Hallo," he said, "where's the other ball?"

I looked at the table, and there were only two balls on it!

"That's an extraordinary thing," I said in amazement.  "I'm almost
certain we started with three."

"Did you put me down?"

"Certainly not; I shouldn't dream of doing such a thing.  I don't say
I mayn't have slipped down myself when nobody was looking.  Myra, did
you notice which pocket I was trying for that time?"

We felt in all of them, and at last found my ball in one of the
bottom ones.  It must have gone there very quietly.

"Score, marker?" I asked confidently, as I prepared to continue my
break.

"Oh, you're going over the crease," cried Myra.

I took my ball back an inch.  "_Will_ you tell me the score?" I said.

"Stevenson (in play) three; Inman, two.  Inman's two were both wides."

Barely were the words out of her mouth when Inman's score was
increased by a no-ball.  A miss-cue they call it technically.

"Three all," said Myra.  "This is awfully exciting.  First one is
ahead, and then the other."

"By the way, how many up are we playing?"

"Five, aren't you?" said Myra.

This roused Thomas.  He had played himself in, and now proceeded to
make a pretty break of seventeen.  I followed.  There was a collision
off the middle pocket between spot and red, and both went down.  Then
plain was unintentionally sunk as the result of a cannon shot, and
spot and red sailed into harbour.  With Thomas's miss I scored
eleven.  Unfortunately, off my next stroke, Thomas again went down.

"Billiards," he said.

"You don't think I want to put the rotten thing down, do you?  It's
such a blessed rabbit.  Directly it sees a hole anywhere it makes for
it.  Hallo, six more.  I shall now give what they call a miss in
baulk."

"Oh, good miss," cried Myra, as spot rested over the middle pocket.

"That was a googly.  You both thought it would break the other way."

The game went on slowly.  When Thomas was ninety and I was
ninety-nine, there was a confused noise without, and Archie and Miss
Blair burst into the room.  At least only Archie actually burst; Miss
Blair entered sedately.

"Who's winning?" cried Archie.

"What an absurd question," I said.  "As if we should tell you."

"All right.  Dahl--Miss Blair, have you ever seen billiards played
really well?"

"Never."

"Then now's your chance.  Ninety, ninety-nine--they've only just
begun.  This is Thomas's first break, I expect.  There--he's got a
clear board.  You get five extra for that, and the other man is
rubiconed.  Ninety-nine all.  Now, it is only a question of who
misses first."

I put down my cue.

"Thomas," I began, "we have said some hard things about each other
to-night, but when I listen to Archie I feel very friendly towards
you."

"Archibald," said Thomas, "is a beastly name."

"So I told Miss Blair.  For a man who was, so to speak, born with a
silver billiard-table in his mouth to come here and make fun of two
persevering and, in my case, promising players, is----"

"You'll never finish that sentence," said Myra.  "Try some more
billiards."

"It was almost impossible to say what I wanted to say grammatically,"
I answered, and I hit my ball very hard up the table at the white.

"It's working across," said Archie, after the second bounce; "it must
hit the red soon.  I give it three more laps."

"It's going much more slowly now," said Miss Blair.

"Probably it's keeping a bit of a sprint for the finish.  Wait till
it gets its second wind.  No, I'm afraid it's no good; it ought to
have started sooner.  Hallo, yes, it's----  Got him!"

"It hasn't finished yet," I said calmly.  "Look--there!"

"Jove!" said Archie, shaking my hand, "that's the longest loser I've
ever seen.  My dear old man, what a performer.  The practice you must
have had.  The years you must have devoted to the game.  I
wonder--could you _possibly_ spare an hour or two to-morrow to play
cricket for us?"




CHAPTER IV

A FEW WIRES

A hundred and eighty for none.  The umpire waved his lily hand, and
the scorer entered one more "four" in his book.  Seeing that the ball
had gone right through a bicycle which was leaning up against the
pavilion, many people (the owner of the bicycle, anyhow) must have
felt that the actual signalling of a boundary was unnecessary; but
our umpire is a stickler for the etiquette of the game.  Once
when----  But no, on second thoughts, I sha'n't tell you that story.
You would say it was a lie--as indeed it is.

"Rotten," said Archie to me, as we crossed over.  (A good captain
always confides in his wicket-keeper.)

"Don't take Simpson off," I said.  "I like watching him."

"I shall go on again myself soon."

"Oh, it's not so bad as that.  Don't lose heart."

The score was two hundred when we met again.

"I once read a book by a lady," I said, "in which the hero started
the over with his right hand and finished it with his left.  I
suppose Simpson couldn't do that?"

"He's a darned rotten bowler, anyway."

"His direction is all right, but his metre is so irregular."

At the end of the next over, "What shall I do?" asked Archie in
despair.

"Put the wicket-keeper on," I said at once.

The idea was quite a new one to him.  He considered it for a moment.

"Can you bowl?" he said at last.

"No."

"Then what on earth----"

"Look here; you've tried 'em with people who can bowl, and they've
made two hundred and twenty in an hour and a half; somebody who can't
bowl will be a little change for them.  That's one reason.  The
second is that we shall all have a bit of a rest while I'm taking my
things off.  The third is that I bet Myra a shilling----"

Archie knelt down, and began to unbuckle my pads.  "I'll 'keep'
myself," he said.  "Are you fast or slow?"

"I haven't the faintest idea.  Just as it occurs to me at the moment,
I expect."

"Well, you're quite right; you can't be worse than some of us.  Will
you have a few balls down first?"

"No, thanks; I should like to come as a surprise to them."

"Well, pitch 'em up anyhow."

"I shall probably vary my length--if possible without any alteration
of action."

I am now approaching the incredible.  The gentle reader, however,
must not be nasty about it; he should at least pretend to believe,
and his best way of doing this is to listen very silently to what
follows.  When he has heard my explanation I shall assume that he
understands.

Bowling is entirely a question of when you let go of the ball.  If
you let go too soon the result is a wide over the batsman's head; if
too late, a nasty crack on your own foot.  Obviously there are spaces
in between.  By the law of averages one must let go at the right
moment at least once.  Why not then at the first ball?  And in the
case of a person like myself, who has a very high action and a good
mouth--I mean who has a very high delivery, such a ball (after a week
of Simpsons and Archies) would be almost unplayable.

Very well then; I did let go at the right moment, but, unfortunately,
I took off from the wrong crease.  The umpire's cry of "No-ball" and
the shattering of the Quidnunc's wicket occurred simultaneously.

"Good ball," said Archie.  "Oh, bad luck!"

I tried to look as though, on the whole, I preferred it that way--as
being ultimately more likely to inspire terror in the batsman at my
end.  Certainly, it gave me confidence; made me over-confident in
fact, so that I held on to the next ball much too long, and it
started bouncing almost at once.

The Quidnunc, who was convinced by this that he had been merely
having a go at the previous ball, shouldered his bat and sneered at
it.  He was still sneering when it came in very quickly, and took the
bottom of the leg stump.  (Finger spin, chiefly.)

Archie walked up slowly, and gazed at me.

"Well?" I said jauntily.

"No, don't speak.  I just want to look, and look, and look.  It's
wonderful.  No elastic up the sleeve, or anything."

"This is where it first pitched," said the Major, as he examined the
ground.

"Did you think of letting in a brass tablet?" I inquired shortly.

"He is quite a young man," went on Archie dreamily, "and does not
care to speak about his plans for the future.  But he is of opinion
that----"

"Break, break, break," said Simpson.  "Three altogether."

"Look here, is there anybody else who wants to say anything?  No?
Then I'll go on with my over."

Archie, who had begun to walk back to his place, returned
thoughtfully to me.

"I just wanted to say, old chap, that if you're writing home to-night
about it, you might remember me to your people."

Blair was about the only person who didn't insult me.  This was
because he had been fielding long-on; and as soon as the wicket fell
he moved round about fifty yards to talk to Miss Fortescue.  What
people can see in her----  Well, directly my next ball was bowled he
started running as hard as he could to square leg, and brought off
one of the finest catches I've ever seen.

"The old square-leg trap," said Archie.  "But you cut it rather fine,
didn't you?  I suppose you knew he was a sprinter?"

"I didn't cut it at all--I was bowling.  Go away."

Yes, I confess it.  I did the hat trick.  It was a good length
half-volley, and the batsman, who had watched my first three balls,
was palpably nervous.  Archie walked round and round me in silence
for some time, and then went over to Thomas.

"He's playing tennis with me this evening," he began.

"I was beaten at billiards by him last night," said Thomas proudly.

"He's going to let me call him by his Christian name."

"They say he's an awfully good chap when you know him," replied
Thomas.

I got another wicket with the last ball of the over, and then we had
lunch.  Myra was smiling all over her face when we came in, but
beyond a "Well bowled, Walter" (which I believe to be Brearley's
name), would have nothing to do with me.  Instead she seized Archie,
and talked long and eagerly to him.  And they both laughed a good
deal.

"Arkwright," I heard Archie say at the end.  "He's sure to be there,
and would do it like a shot."

Like a wise captain Archie did not put me on after lunch, and Simpson
soon began to have the tail in difficulties.  Just after the eighth
wicket fell a telegram came out.  Archie took it and handed it to me.
"From Maclaren, I expect," he said with a grin.

"You funny ass; I happen to know it's from Dick.  I asked him for a
wire about the Kent match."

"Oh, did Kent win?" said Archie, looking over my shoulder.  As I
opened it, the others came up, and I read--


  "_Please be in attendance for next Test Match._"
  "HAWKE"


I got three more that afternoon.  One from Fry, one from
Leveson-Gower, and one from Maclaren.  They all came from Lord's, and
I've half a mind to take my telegrams with me, and go.  Then Myra
would probably get six months in the second division.

"But I shouldn't mind that," said Myra.  "You could easily bowl--I
mean bail--me out."

A silly joke, I call it.




CHAPTER V

AT PLAY

I selected a handkerchief, gave a last look at the weather, which was
beastly, and went down (very late) to breakfast.  As I opened the
door there was a sudden hush.  Everybody looked eagerly at me.  Then
Miss Fortescue tittered.

Well, you know how one feels when that happens.  I put my hand
quickly to my tie--it was still there.  I squinted down my nose, but
there was no smut.  To make quite sure I went over to the glass.
Then Simpson exploded.

Yet nobody spoke.  They all sat there watching me, and at last I
began to get nervous.  I opened my mouth to say "Good-morning," but
before I got it out Miss Blair gave a little shriek of excitement.
That upset me altogether.  I walked up to the tea-pot, and pouring
myself out a cup said, with exaggerated carelessness, "Rotten day,
isn't it?"

And then came the laughter--shout after shout.

I held out my hand to Myra.  "Good-bye," I said, "I'm going home.
Thank you for a very jolly time, but I'm not going to be bullied."

"Oh, you dear," she gurgled.

"I am rather sweet before breakfast," I admitted, "but how----"

"It was too heavenly of you.  I never thought you would."

"I think I shall go back to bed."

"It was rather rough luck," said Archie, "but of course the later you
are the worse it is for you."

"And the higher the fewer.  Quite so.  If this is from Breakfast
Table Topics in _The Daily Mirror_, I haven't seen them to-day; but
I'll do my best."

"Archie, explain."

Archie took up a piece of paper from the table, and explained.  "It's
like this," he said.  "I came down first and looked at the weather,
and said----"

"Anyone would," I put in quickly.

"Well, then, Blair came in and said, 'Beastly day,' and then
Simpson----  Well, I thought I'd write down everybody's first remark,
to see if anybody let the weather alone.  Here they are."

"It's awful," put in Myra, "to have one's remarks taken down straight
off.  I've quite forgotten what I said."

This was the list:

_Archie_: "Bother."  (So he says.)

_Blair_: "What a beastly day!"

_Simpson_: "What a jolly day!"

_The Major_: "Well, not much cricket to-day, hey?"

_Myra_: "Oh dear, what a day!"

_Miss Blair_: "What a terrible day!"

_Miss Fortescue_: "Oh, you poor men--what a day!"

_Thomas_: "Rotten day, isn't it?"

_Me_: "Rotten day, isn't it?"

"I don't think much of Thomas's remark," I said.

Later on in the morning we met (all except the Major, that is) in the
room which Myra calls hers and Archie calls the nursery, and tried to
think of something to do.

"I'm not going to play bridge all day for anyone," said Archie.

"The host should lay himself out to amuse his guests," said Myra.

"Otherwise, his guests will lay him out," I warned him, "to amuse
themselves."

"Well, what do you all want to do?"

"I should like to look at a photograph album," said Thomas.

"Stump cricket."

"What about hide-and-seek?"

"No, I've got it," cried Archie; "we'll be boy scouts."

"Hooray!" cried everybody else.

Archie was already on his hands and knees.  "Ha!" he said, "is that
the spoor of the white ant that I see before me?  Spoorly not.  I
have but been winded by the water-beetle.

  "Sound, sound the trumpet, beat the drum,
    To all the scouting world proclaim
  One crowded stalk upon the turn
    Is worth an age without a name."


"Archie!" shrieked Myra in horror.  "It is too late," she added, "all
the ladies have swooned."

We arranged sides.  Myra and I and Simpson and Thomas against the
others.  They were to start first.

"This isn't simply hide-and-seek," said Archie, as they went off.
"You've got to track us fairly.  We shall probably 'blaze'
door-posts.  When you hear the bleat of a tinned sardine that means
we're ready.  Keep your eyes skinned, my hearties, and heaven defend
the right."

"We ought to have bare knees really," said Myra, when they'd gone.
"Boy scouts always do.  So that when they go through a bed of nettles
they know they've been."

"I shall stalk the stairs to begin with," I said.  "Simpson, you go
down the back way and look as much like a vacuum-cleaner as possible.
Then they won't notice you.  Thomas and Myra----  Hush!  Listen!  Was
that the bleat of a fresh sardine or the tinned variety?"

"Tinned," said Myra.  "Let's go."

We went.  I took the Queen Anne staircase on my--in the proper
stalking position.  I moved very slowly, searching for spoor.
Half-way down the stairs my back fin slipped and I shot over the old
oak at a tremendous pace, landing in the hall like a Channel swimmer.
Looking up, I saw Thomas in front of me.  He was examining the door
for "blazes."  Myra was next to him, her ear to the ground, listening
for the gallop of horses' hoofs.  I got up and went over to them.

"Hast seen aught of a comely wench in parlous case, hight Mistress
Dahlia?" I asked Thomas.

"Boy scouts don't talk like that," he said gruffly.

"I beg your pardon.  I was thinking that I was a Cavalier and you
were a Roundhead.  Now I perceive that you are just an ordinary
fathead."

"Why," said Myra at the foot of the stairs, "what does this button
mean?  Have I found a clue?"

I examined it, and then I looked at my own coat.

"You have," I said.  "Somebody has been down those stairs quite
recently, for the button is still warm."

"Where is Scout Simpson?"

At that moment he appeared breathless with excitement.

"I have had an adventure," he said hurriedly, without saluting.  "I
was on the back stairs looking like a vacuum-cleaner when suddenly
Archie and Miss Blair appeared.  They looked right at me, but didn't
seem to penetrate my disguise.  Archie, in fact, leant against me,
and said to Miss Blair: 'I will now tell you of my secret mission.  I
carry caviare--I mean despatches--to the general.  Breathe but a word
of this to the enemy, and I miss the half-holiday on Saturday.  Come,
let us be going, but first to burn the secret code.'  And--and then
he struck a match on me, and burned it."

Myra gurgled and hastily looked solemn again.  "Proceed, Scout
Simpson," she said, "for the night approaches apace."

"Well, then they started down the stairs, and I went after them on
my--scouting, you know.  I made rather a noise at one corner, and
Archie looked round at me, and said to Miss Blair: 'The tadpoles are
out full early.  See yonder where one lies basking.'  And he came
back, and put his foot on me and said, 'Nay, 'tis but a shadow.  Let
us return right hastily.  Yet tarry a moment, what time I lay a false
trail.'  So they tarried and he wrote a note and dropped it on me.
And, afterwards, I got up and here it is."

"The secret despatch," cried Myra.

"It's addressed to the Scoutmistress, and it says outside: 'Private,
not to be opened till Christmas Day.'"

Myra opened it and read: "Your blessed scouts are everywhere.  Let me
just have five minutes with her in the nursery, there's a dear.  I'd
do as much for you."

But she didn't read it aloud, and I didn't see it till some time
afterwards.  She simply put it away, and smiled, and announced that
the scouts would now adjourn to the billiard-room for pemmican and
other refreshments; which they did.  The engagement was announced
that evening.




CHAPTER VI

IN AND OUT

"Well," said Thomas, "how are we going to celebrate the joyful event?"

We were sitting on the lawn, watching Blair and Miss Fortescue play
croquet.  Archie and Dahlia were not with us; they had (I suppose)
private matters to discuss.  Our match did not begin for another
hour, happily for the lovers; happily also for the croquet-players,
who had about fifty-six more hoops, posts, flags and what not to
negotiate.

"It's awfully difficult to realise it," said Myra.  "My own brother!
Just fancy--I can hardly believe it."

"I don't think there can be any doubt," I said.  "Something's
happened to him, anyhow--he's promised to put me in first to-day."

"Let's have a dance to-morrow night," continued Thomas, relentlessly
pursuing his original idea.  "And we'll all dance with Miss Blair."

"Yes.  Archie would like that."

"I remember, some years ago, when I was in Spain," said Simpson----

"This," I murmured appreciatively, "is how all the best stories
begin."  And I settled myself more comfortably in my chair.

"No," said Simpson, "I'm wrong there.  It was in Hampstead."  And he
returned to his meditations.

"Tell you what," said Thomas, "you ought to write 'em an ode,
Simpson."

"There's nothing that rhymes with the lady."

"There's hair," I said quite unintentionally.

"I meant with Dahlia."

"My dear man, there are heaps.  Why, there's azalea."

"That's only one."

"Well, there are lots of different kinds of azalea."

"Any rhymes for Archie and Mannering?" said Simpson scornfully.

"Certainly.  And Simpson.  You might end with him--

  "'Forgive the way the metre limps on,
  It's always like that with Samuel Simpson.'

You get the idea?"

"Hush," said Myra, "Miss Fortescue has passed under a hoop."

But it is time that we got on to my innings.  Archie managed to win
the toss, and, as he had promised, took me in with him.  It was the
proudest and most nervous moment of my life.

"I've never been in first before," I said, as we walked to the
wickets.  "Is there any little etiquette to observe?"

"Oh, rather.  Especially, if you're going to take first ball."

"Oh, there's no doubt about my taking the _first_ ball."

"In that case the thing to remember is, that when the umpire calls
'play' the side refusing to play loses the match."

"Then it all rests on me?  Your confidence in me must be immense.  I
think I shall probably consent to play."

I obtained guard and took my stand at the wicket.  Most cricketers
nowadays, I am told, adopt the "two-eyed stance," but for myself I
still stick to the good old two-legged one.  It seems to me to be
less wearing.  My style, I should observe, blends happily the dash of
a Joseph Vine with the patience of a Kenneth Hutchings; and after a
long innings I find a glass of----  I've forgotten the name of it
now, but I know I find it very refreshing.

Being the hero (you will admit that--after my hat trick) of this true
story, I feel I must describe my innings carefully.  Though it only
totalled seventeen, there was this to be said for it: it is the only
innings of less than a hundred ever made by a hero.

It began with a cut to square leg, for which we ran a forced single,
and followed on with a brace of ones in the direction of fine slip.
After that, I stopped the bowler in the middle of his run-up, and
signalled to a spectator to move away from the screen.  This was a
put-up job with Myra, and I rather hoped they would give me something
for it, but apparently they didn't.  At the end of the over, I went
up and talked to Archie.  In first-class cricket, the batsmen often
do this, and it impresses the spectators immensely.

I said, "I bet you a shilling I'm out next over."

He said, "I won't take you."

I said, "Then I huff you," and went back to my crease.

My next scoring stroke was a two-eyed hook over point's head, and
then Archie hit three fours running.  I had another short
conversation with him, in the course of which I recited two lines
from Shakespeare and asked him a small but pointed conundrum, and
afterwards I placed the ball cleverly to mid-off, the agility of the
fieldsman, however, preventing any increment, unearned or otherwise.
Finally, I gave my cap to the umpire, made some more ones, changed my
bat, and was caught at the wicket.

"I hit it," I said, as I walked away.  I said it to nobody in
particular, but the umpire refused to alter his decision.

"I congratulate you," said Miss Blair, when I was sitting down again.

"I was just going to do that to you," I said.

"Oh, but you were kind enough to do that last night."

"Ah, this is extra.  I've just been batting out there with your young
man.  Perhaps you noticed?"

"Well, I think I must have."

"Yes.  Well, I wanted to tell you that I think he has quite an idea
of the game, and that with more experience he would probably be good
enough to play for--for Surrey.  Second eleven.  Yes.  At hockey."

"Thank you so much.  You've known him a long time, haven't you?"

"We were babes together, madam.  At least, simultaneously.  We
actually met at school.  He had blue eyes and curly hair, and fought
the captain on the very first day.  On the second day his hair was
still curly, but he had black eyes.  On the third day he got into the
cricket eleven, and on the fourth he was given his footer cap.
Afterwards he sang in the choir, and won the competition for graceful
diving.  It was not until his second term that the headmaster really
began to confide in him.  By the way, is this the sort of thing you
want?"

"Yes," smiled Dahlia.  "Something like that."

"Well, then we went to Cambridge together.  He never did much work,
but his algebra paper in the Little Go was so brilliant that they
offered him the Senior Wranglership.  He refused on the ground that
it might interfere with his training for the tug of war, for which he
had just obtained his blue--and----  It's a great strain making all
this up.  Do you mind if I stop now?"

"Of course I know that isn't all true, but he is like that, isn't he?"

"He is.  He put me in first to-day."

"I know you really are fond of him."

"Lorblessyou--yes."

"That makes you my friend, too."

"Of course."  I patted her hand.  "That reminds me--as a friend I
feel bound to warn you that there is a person about in the
neighbourhood called Samuel Simpson who meditates an evil design upon
you and yours.  In short, a poem.  In this he will liken you to the
azalea, which I take to be a kind of shrubby plant."

"Yes?"

"Yes, well, all I want to say is, if he comes round with the hat
afterwards, don't put anything in."

"Poor man," smiled Dahlia.  "That's his living, isn't it?"

"Yes.  That's why I say don't put anything in."

"I see.  Oh, there--he's out.  Poor Archie."

"Are you very sorry?" I said, smiling at her.  "I'm just going, you
know."

"Between ourselves," I said later to Myra, "that isn't at all a bad
girl."

"Oh, fancy!"

"But I didn't come to talk about her.  I came to talk about my
seventeen."

"Yes, do let's."

"Yes.  Er--you begin."




CHAPTER VII

ALL OVER

"May I have a dance?" I asked Miss Blair.

She put her head on one side and considered.

"One, two, three--the next but _five_," she said.

"Thank you.  That sounds a lot; is it only one?"

"You may have two running then, if you like."

"What about two running, and one hopping, and one really gliding?
Four altogether."

"We'll see," said Miss Blair gravely.

Myra, who was being very busy, came up and dragged me away.

"I want to introduce you to somebody.  I say, have you seen Thomas?"

"It's no earthly good introducing me to Thomas again."

"He's so important because he thinks the dance was his idea; of
course I'd meant to have it all along.  There she is--her name's Dora
Dalton.  I think it's Dora."

"I shall call her Dora, anyhow."

I was introduced, and we had a very jolly waltz together.  She danced
delightfully; and when we had found a comfortable corner she began to
talk.

She said, "Do you play cricket?"

I was rather surprised, but I kept quite cool, and said, "Yes."

"My brother's very fond of it.  He is very good too.  He was playing
here yesterday against Mr Mannering's team, and made six, and then
the umpire gave him out; but he wasn't out really, and he was very
angry.  I don't wonder, do you?"

I had a sudden horrible suspicion.

"Did you say your name was Dora--I mean his name was Dalton?"

"Yes.  And just because he was angry, which anybody would be, the
wicket-keeper was very rude, and told him to go home and--and bake
his head."

"Not bake," I said gently, my suspicion having now become almost a
certainty.  "Boil."

"Go home, and boil his head," she repeated indignantly.

"And did he?"

"Did he what?"

"Er--did he understand--I mean, don't you think your brother may have
misunderstood?  I can't believe that a wicket-keeper would ever
demean himself by using the word 'boil.'  Not as you might say boil.
'Cool his head' was probably the expression--it was a very hot day, I
remember.  And ... ah, there's the music beginning again.  Shall we
go back?"

I am afraid Miss Dalton's version of the incident was not quite
accurate.

What had happened was this: I had stumped the fellow, when he was
nearly a mile and a half outside his crease; and when he got back to
it some minutes later, and found the umpire's hand up, he was
extremely indignant and dramatic about it.  Quite to myself, _sotto
voce_ as it were, I murmured, "Oh, go home!" and I may have called
attention in some way to the "bails."  But as to passing any remarks
about boiling heads--well, it simply never occurred to me.

I had a dance with Myra shortly after this.  She had been so busy and
important that I felt quite a stranger.  I adapted my conversation
accordingly.

"It's a very jolly floor, isn't it?" I said, as I brought her an ice.

"Oh yes!" said Myra in the same spirit.

"Have you been to many floors--I mean dances, lately?"

"Oh yes!"

"So have I.  I think dances have been very late lately.  I think when
the floor's nice it doesn't matter about the ices.  Don't you think
the band is rather too elastic--I mean keeps very good time?  I think
so long as the time is good it doesn't matter about the floor."

"Oh, _isn't_ it?" said Myra enthusiastically.

There was a pleasant pause while we both thought of something else to
say.

"Have you," we began.

"I beg your pardon," we said at once.

"I was going to say," Myra went on, "have you read any nice books
lately, or are you fonder of tennis?"

"I like reading nice books _about_ tennis," I said.  "If they _are_
nice books, and are really about tennis.  Er--do you live in London?"

"Yes.  It is so handy for the theatres, isn't it?  There is no place
exactly like London, is there?  I mean it's so different."

"Well, of course, up in Liverpool we do get the trams, you know,
now....  I say, I'm tired of pretending I've only just met you.
Let's talk properly."

At this moment we heard a voice say, "Let's try in here," and Archie
and Dahlia appeared.

"Hallo! here's the happy pair," said Myra.

They came in and looked at us diffidently.  I leant back and gazed at
the ceiling.

"Were you just going?" said Archie.

"We were not," I said.

"Then we'll stay and talk to you."

"We were in the middle of an important conversation."

"Oh, don't mind us."

"Thank you.  It's really for your benefit, so you'd better listen.
Let me see, where were we?  Oh yes, 'One pound of beef, ninepence;
three pounds of potatoes, fourpence; one piece of emery paper for the
blanc-mange, tuppence; one pound of india-rubber----'"

"'Dahlia _darling_,'" interrupted Myra, in a fair imitation of
Archie's voice, "'how often have I told you that we _can't_ afford
india-rubber in the cake?  Just a few raisins and a cherry is really
all you want.  You _mustn't_ be so extravagant.'"

"'Dearest, I do try; and after all, love, it wasn't _I_ who fell into
the cocoa last night.'"

"'I didn't fall in, I simply dropped my pipe in, and it was you
insisted on pouring it away afterwards.  And then, look at this--_One
yard, of lace_, 4s. 6d.  That's for the cutlets, I suppose.  For
people in our circumstances paper frillings are _quite_ sufficient.'"

Archie and Dahlia listened to us with open mouths.  Then they looked
at each other, and then at us again.

"Is there any more?" asked Archie.

"There's lots more, but we've forgotten it."

"You aren't ill or anything?"

"We are both perfectly well."

"How's Miss Dalton?"

"Dora," I said, "is also well.  So is Miss Fortescue and so is
Thomas.  We are all well."

"I thought, perhaps----"

"No, there you are wrong."

"I expect it's just the heat and the excitement," said Dahlia, with a
smile.  "It takes some people like that."

"I'm afraid you miss our little parable," said Myra.

"We do.  Come on, Dahlia."

"You'll pardon me, Archibald, but Miss Blair is dancing this with me."

Archie objected strongly, but I left, him with Myra, and took Miss
Blair away.  We sat on the stairs and thought.

"It has been a lovely week," said Dahlia.

"It has," I agreed.

"Perhaps more lovely for me than for you."

"That's just where I don't agree with you.  You know, we think it's
greatly over-rated.  Falling in love, I mean."

"Who's 'we'?"

"Myra and I.  We've been talking it over.  That's why we rather dwelt
upon the sordid side of it just now.  I suppose we didn't move you at
all?"

"No," said Dahlia, "we're settled."

"That's exactly it," I said.  "I should hate to be settled.  It's so
much more fun like this.  Myra quite agrees with me."

Dahlia smiled to herself.  "But perhaps some day," she began.

"I don't know.  I never look more than a week ahead.  'It has been
great fun this week, and it will probably be great fun next week.'
That's my motto."

"Well, ye--es," said Miss Blair doubtfully.




PART II


CHAPTER I

ONE OF THE PLAYERS

"Do I know everybody?" I asked Myra towards the end of the dinner,
looking round the table.

"I think so," said Myra.  "If there's anybody you don't see in the
window ask for him."

"I can see most of them.  Who's that tall handsome fellow grinning at
me now?"

"Me," said Archie, smiling across at us.

"Go away," said Myra.  "Gentlemen shouldn't eavesdrop.  This is a
perfectly private conversation."

"You've got a lady on each side of you," I said heatedly, "why don't
you talk to _them_?  It's simply scandalous that Myra and I can't get
a moment to ourselves."

"They're both busy; they won't have anything to say to me."

"Then pull a cracker with yourself.  Surely you can think of
something, my lad."

"He has a very jealous disposition," said Myra, "and whenever
Dahlia----  Bother, he's not listening."

I looked round the table again to see if I could spy a stranger.

"There's a man over there--who's he?  Where this orange is pointing."

"Oranges don't point.  Waggle your knife round.  Oh, him?  Yes, he's
a friend of Archie's--Mr Derry."

"Who is he?  Does he do anything exciting?"

"He does, rather.  You know those little riddles in the Christmas
crackers?"

"Yes?"

"Yes.  Well, he couldn't very well do those, because he's an
electrical engineer."

"But why----"

"No, I didn't.  I simply asked you if you knew them.  And he plays
the piano beautifully, and he's rather a good actor, and he never
gets up till about ten.  Because his room is next to mine, and you
can hear everything, and I can hear him not getting up."

"That doesn't sound much like an electrical engineer.  You ask him
suddenly what amperes are a penny, and see if he turns pale.  I
expect he makes up the riddles, after all.  Simpson only does the
mottoes, I know.  Now talk to Thomas for a bit while I drink my
orange."

Five minutes elapsed, or transpired (whichever it is), before I was
ready to talk again.  Generally, after an orange, I want to have a
bath and go straight off to bed, but this particular one had not been
so all-overish as usual.

"Now then," I said, as I examined the crystallised fruit, "I'm with
you in one minute."

Myra turned round and looked absently at me.

"I don't know how to begin," she said to herself.

"The beginning's easy enough," I explained, as I took a dish of green
sweets under my charge, "it's the knowing when to stop."

"Can you eat those and listen to something serious?"

"I'll try....  Yes, I can eat them all right.  Now, let's see if I
can listen....  Yes, I can listen all right."

"Then it's this.  I've been putting it off as long as I can, but
you've got to be told to-night.  It's--well--do you know why you're
here?"

"Of course, I do.  Haven't I just been showing you?"

"Well, why are you here?"

"Well, frankly, because I'm hungry, I suppose.  Of course, I know
that if I hadn't been I should have come in to dinner, just the same,
but----  Hang it, I mean that's the root idea of a dining-room, isn't
it?  And I am hungry.  At least I was."

"Stave it off again with an almond," said Myra, pushing them along to
me.  "What I really meant was why you're here in the house."

This was much more difficult.  I began to consider possible reasons.

"Because you all love me," I started; "because you put the wrong
address on the envelope; because the regular boot-boy's ill; because
you've never heard me sing in church; because--stop me when I'm
getting warm--because Miss Fortescue refused to come unless I was
invited; because----"

"Stop," said Myra.  "That was it.  And, of course, you know I didn't
mean that at all."

"What an awful lot of things you don't mean to-night.  Be brave, and
have it right out this time."

"All right, then, I will.  One, two, three--we're going to act a play
on Saturday."

She leant forward, and regarded me with apprehension.

"But why not?  I'll promise to clap."

"You can't, because, you see, you're going to act too.  Isn't it
jolly?" said Myra breathlessly.

I gave what, if I hadn't just begun the last sweet, would have been a
scornful laugh.

"Me act?  Why, I've never--I don't do it--it isn't done--I don't
act--not on Saturdays.  How absurd!"

"Have you told him, Myra?" Dahlia called out suddenly.

"I'm telling him now.  I think he's taking it all right."

"Don't talk about me as 'him'!" I said angrily.  "And I'm not taking
it all right.  I'm not taking it at all."

"It's only such a very small part--we're all doing something, you
know.  And your costume's ordered and everything.  But how awfully
sporting of you."

After that, what could I say?

"Er--what am I?" I asked modestly.

"You're a--a small rat-catcher," said Myra cheerfully.

"I beg your pardon?"

"A rat-catcher."

"You said a small one.  Does that mean that I'm of diminutive size,
or that I'm in a small way of business, or that my special line is
young ones?"

"It means that you haven't much to say."

"I see.  And would you call it a tragic or a pathetic part?"

"It's a comic part, rather.  You're Hereditary Grand Rat-Catcher to
the Emperor Bong.  Bong the Second.  Not the first Bong, the Dinner
Bong."

"Look here.  I suppose you know that I've never acted in my life, and
never been or seen a rat-catcher in my life.  It is therefore useless
for you to tell me to be perfectly natural."

"You have so little to do; it will be quite easy.  Your great scene
is where you approach the Emperor very nervously----"

"I shall do the nervous part all right."

"And beg him to spare the life of his mother-in-law."

"Why?  I mean, who is she?"

"Miss Fortescue."

"Yes, I doubt if I can make that bit seem quite so natural.  Still,
I'll try."

"Hooray.  How splendid!"

"A rat-catcher," I murmured to myself.  "Where is the rat?  The rat
is on the mat.  The cat is on the rat.  The bat is on the cat.
The----"

"Mr Derry will go through your part with you to-morrow.  Some of it
is funnier than that."

"The electrical engineer?  What do they know about rat-catching?"

"Nothing, only----"

"Aha!  Now I see who your mysterious Mr Derry is.  He is going to
coach us."

"He is.  You've found it out at last.  How bright green sweets make
you."

"They have to be really bright green sweets.  Poor man!  What a job
he'll have with us all."

"Yes," said Myra, as she prepared to leave me.  "Now you know why he
doesn't get up till ten."

"In the rat-catching business," I said thoughtfully, as I opened the
door, "the real rush comes in the afternoon.  Rat-catchers in
consequence never get up till ten-thirty.  Do you know," I decided,
"I am quite beginning to like my little part."




CHAPTER II

ALARMS AND EXCURSIONS

I was, I confess, very late the next morning, even for a rat-catcher.
Mr Derry was in the middle of his breakfast; all the others had
finished.  We saluted, and I settled down to work.

"There is going to be a rehearsal at eleven o'clock, I believe," said
Derry.  "It must be nearly that now."

"I shall be there," I said, "if I have to bring the marmalade with
me.  You're going to coach us?"

"Well, I believe I said I would."

"Though I have never assumed the buskin myself," I went on, "I have,
of course, heard of you as an amateur actor." (_Liar_.) "And if you
could tell me how to act, while I am finishing my bacon, I should be
most awfully obliged."

"Haven't you really done any?"

"Only once, when I was very small.  I was the heroine.  I had an
offer, but I had to refuse it, I said, 'Alath, dear heart, I may not,
I am married already.'"

"Very right and proper," murmured Derry.

"Well, as it turned out, I had made a mistake.  It was my first who
had been married already.  The little play was full of surprises
like."

Derry coughed, and took out his pipe.  "Let me see," he began,
"what's your part?"

"I am--er--a rodent-collector."

"Oh yes--the Emperor's rat-catcher."

"Grand hereditary," I said stiffly.  "It had been in the family for
years."

"Quite so."

I was about to enlarge upon the advantages of the hereditary
principle when the door opened suddenly to admit Myra and Archie.

"You don't say you're down at last!" said Myra, in surprise.

"I hardly say anything at breakfast, as a rule," I pointed out.

"What an enormous one you're having.  And only last night----"

"On the contrary, I'm eating practically nothing--a nut and one piece
of parsley off the butter.  The fact is, I glanced at my part before
I went to bed, and there seemed such a lot of it I hardly slept at
all."

"Why, you don't come on very much," said Archie.  "Neither do I.  I'm
a conjuror.  Can any gentleman here oblige me with a rabbit? ... No,
sir, I said a rabbit.  Oh, I beg your pardon, I thought you were
coming up on to the stage....  Any gentleman----"

"Have some jam instead.  What do you mean by saying I don't come on
very much?"  I took the book out of my pocket, and began to turn the
leaves.  "Here you are, nearly every page--'_Enter R._,' '_Exit R._,'
'_Enter L._'--I don't know who _he_ is--'_Exeunt R._,'--why, the
rat-catcher's always doing something.  Ah, here they're more
explicit--'_Enter R.C._'  Hallo, that's funny, because I'd just----
Oh, I see."

"One of our oldest and most experienced mimes," said Archie to Derry.
"You must get him to talk to you."

"No secret of the boards is hid from him," added Myra.

"Tell us again, sir, about your early struggles," begged Archie.

"He means your early performances on the stage," explained Myra.

"There's one very jolly story about Ellen Terry and the fireproof
curtain.  Let me see, were you _Macbeth_ then, or _Noise of
Trumpets_?  I always forget."

I drank my last cup of tea, and rose with dignity.

"It is a humorous family," I apologised to Derry.  "Their grandfather
was just the same.  He _would_ have his little joke about the first
steam-engine."

Outside, in the hall, there was a large crowd of unemployed, all
talking at once.  I caught the words "ridiculous" and "rehearsal,"
and the connection between the two seemed obvious and frequent.  I
singled out Thomas, abstracted his pouch, and began to fill up.

"What is all this acting business?" I asked.  "Some idea about a
little play, what?  Let's toddle off, and have a game of billiards."

"They've let me in for a bally part," said Thomas, "and you needn't
think you're going to get out of it.  They've got you down, all
right."

"Thomas, I will be frank with you.  I am no less a person than the
Emperor Bong's Hereditary (it had been in the family for years) Grand
Rat-catcher.  The real rush, however, comes in the afternoon.  My
speciality is young ones."

"I'm his executioner."

"And he has a conjuror too.  What a staff!  Hallo, good morning,
Simpson.  Are you anything lofty?"

"'Oh, I am the Emperor Bong,'" said Simpson gaily; "'I am beautiful,
clever and strong----'"

"Question," said Thomas.

"''Tis my daily delight to carouse and to fight, and at moments I
burst into song.'"

I looked at him in amazement.

"Well, just at present," I said, "all I want is a match....  A
lucifer, Emp.  A pine vesta, Maj.  Thanks....  Now tell me--does
anybody beside yourself burst into song during the play?  Any
bursting by Thomas or myself, for instance?"

"Nobody sings at all.  My little poem is recitative."

"If you mean it's very bad, I agree with you," said Thomas.

"I made it up myself.  It was thought that my part should be livened
up a little."

"Well, why hasn't it been?"

"If you will give me two minutes, Simpson," I said, "I will liven up
my own part better than that.  What rhymes with rat-catcher?"

"Cat-catcher."

"Wait a bit....  Yes, that's got it.

  "'Oh, I'm on the Emperor's staff
  I'm a rodent-collector (don't laugh)--
    My record (in braces)
    Of rats and their races
  Is a thousand and eight and a half.'"


"May we have that again?" said Myra, appearing suddenly.

"'Oh, I'm on----'"

"No," said Thomas.

"'Oh, I'm on----'"

"No," said Simpson.

"There is no real demand, I'm afraid."

"Well, I did just hear it before," said Myra.  "I wish you'd make up
one for me.  I think we might all announce ourselves like that, and
then the audience will have no difficulty in recognising us."

"They'll recognise Thomas if he comes on with an axe.  They won't
think he's just trotted round with the milk.  But what are you, Myra?"

"The Emperor's wife's maid."

"Another member of the highly trained staff.  Well, go on, Simpson."

"'Oh, I am her Majesty's maid,'" declared Simpson.  "We all begin
with 'Oh,' to express surprise at finding ourselves on the stage at
all.  'Oh, I am her Majesty's maid, I'm a sad little flirt, I'm
afraid.'"

"I'm respectable, steady and staid," corrected Myra.

"No," I said; "I have it--"

  "'Oh, I am her Majesty's maid!
  And her charms are beginning to fade,
    I can sit in the sun
    And look _just_ twenty-one,
  While _she's_ thirty-six in the shade.'"


Myra made a graceful curtsey.

"Thank you, sir.  You'll have to pay me a lot more of those before
the play is over."

"Will I really?"

"Well, seeing as the Grand Hereditary One is supposed to be making up
to her Majesty's confidential attendant----"

Miss Fortescue came pushing up to us.

"It is too ridiculous," she complained; "none of us know our parts
yet, and if we have a rehearsal now--what do you think about it?"

I looked at Myra and smiled to myself.  "I'm all for a rehearsal at
once," I said.




CHAPTER III

A REHEARSAL

"Now this is a very simple trick," said Archie, from the centre of
the stage.  "For this little trick all I want is, a hippopotamus and
a couple of rubies.  I take the hippopotamus in one hand--so--and
cover it with the handkerchief.  Then, having carefully peeled the
rubies----"

Thomas put the last strip of silver paper on to his axe, and surveyed
the result proudly.

"But how splendid!" said Myra, as she hurried past.  "Only you want
some blood."  And she jumped over the footlights and disappeared.

"Good idea.  Archie, where do you keep the blood?"

"Hey, presto! it's gone.  And now, sir, if you will feel in your
waistcoat pockets you will find the hippopotamus in the right-hand
side and the red ink in the left.  No?  Dear, dear, the hippopotamus
must have been a bad one."

"Be an artist, Thomas," I said, "and open a vein or two.  Do the
thing properly, Beerbohm.  But soft, a winsome maid, in sooth; I will
approach her.  I always forget that sooth bit.  But soft, a win----"

"Why don't we begin?" asked Simpson; "I can't remember my part much
longer.  Oh, by the way, when you come up to me and say, 'Your
Majesty e'en forgets the story of the bull's-eye and the revolving
bookcase----"

"Go away; I don't say anything so silly."

"Oh, of course it's Blair.  Blair, when you come up to me and
say----"  They retired to the back of the stage to arrange a very
effective piece of business.

"Any card you like, madam, so long as it is in the pack.  The Queen
of Hearts?  Certainly.  Now I take the others and tear them up--so.
The card remaining will be yours.  Ah, as I thought--it is the Queen
of Hearts."

"Archie, you're talking too much," said Dahlia, "and none of it comes
into your part really."

"I'm getting the atmosphere.  Have you an old top hat on you, dear,
because if so we'll make a pudding.  No top hat?  Then pudding is
horf."

"But stay, who is this approaching?  Can it be--I say, mind the
footlights.  When are we going to begin?"

"There!" said Thomas proudly.  "Anybody would know that was blood."

"But how perfectly lovely," said Myra.  "Only you want some notches."

"What for?"

"To show where you executed the other men, of course.  You always get
a bit off your axe when you execute anybody."

"Yes, I've noticed that too," I agreed.  "Notches, Thomas, notches."

"Why don't you do something for a change?  What about the trap or
whatever it is you catch your bally rats with?  Why don't you make
that?"

"It isn't done with a trap, Thomas dear.  It's partly the power of
the human eye and partly kindness.  I sit upon a sunny bank and sing
to them."

"Which is that?"

"If we don't begin soon," began Simpson----

"Hallo, Emperor, what's that you're saying?  Quite so, I agree with
you.  I wonder if your High Fatness can lend me such a thing as a
hard-boiled egg.  Simpkins, when this rehearsal is over--that is to
say, to-morrow--I'll take you on at juggling; I'm the best----"

Deny finished his conversation with Miss Fortescue and turned to the
stage.

"Now then, please, _please_," he said.  "We'll just take the First
Act.  Scene, The Emperor's Palace.  Enter Rat-catcher.  You come on
from the left."

I coughed and came on.

My part was not a long one, but it was a very important one.  I was
the connecting link between the different episodes of the play, and
they wanted some connecting.  Whenever anybody came on to the stage,
I said (supposing I was there, and I generally was--the rat-catcher
of those days corresponding to the modern plumber)--I said, "But who
is this?" or "Hush, here comes somebody."  In this way, the attention
of the wakeful part of the audience was switched on to the new
character, and continuity of action was preserved.

I coughed and came on.

"No," said Derry, "you must come on much more briskly."

"I can't.  I've been bitten by a rat."

"It doesn't say so anywhere."

"Well, that's how I read the part.  Hang it, I ought to know if I've
been bitten or not.  But I won't show it if you like; I'll come on
briskly."

I went out, and came on very briskly.

"That's better," said Derry.

"'His Majesty ordered me to be here at the stroke of noon,'" I said.
"'Belike he has some secret commands to lay upon me, or perchance it
is nought but a plague of rats.  But who is this?'"

"'Oh,'" said Myra, coming in suddenly, "'I had thought to be alone.'"

"'Nay, do not flee from me, pretty one.  It is thus that----' I say,
Myra, it's no good my saying do not flee if you don't flee."

"I was just going to.  You didn't give me a chance.  There, now I'm
fleeing."

"Oh, all right.  'It is thus that the rats flee when they see me
approaching.  Am I so very fearsome?'"

"'Orrid," said Archie to himself from the wings.

"One moment," said Derry, and he turned round to speak to somebody.

"Puffickly 'orrid," said Archie again.

"Nay, do not frown," Myra went on, "'tis only my little brother, who
is like unto a codfish himself, and jealous withal."

"Ay, ay, and I thought it _was_ a codfish.  So that I had e'en
brought the egg-sauce with me."

"Trouble not thyself for that," said Archie.  "For verily the
audience will supply thee with all the eggs thou wantest.  I say, we
_are_ being funny."

"I'm not, I'm quite serious, I really did think it was a co----  'But
tell me, fair one,'" I said hurriedly, "'for what dost the Emperor
want me?'"

"Yes, yes," said Derry, "I'm sorry I had to interrupt you.  I think
perhaps we had better begin again.  Yes, from the beginning."

The rehearsal rolled on.

* * * * * * *

"I think it went splendidly," said Myra.  "If only we had known our
parts and come in at the right moments and been more serious over it."

"If there's any laughing to be done it will have to be done by _us_.
The audience won't laugh."

"'Mr Derry having explained that the author was not in the house, the
audience collected their cauliflowers and left quietly.'  I think
it's a rotten play."

"Well, it isn't frightfully funny," said Myra, "but we can put that
in ourselves."

"It's so jolly hard to say the lines properly--they're so unnatural,"
complained Thomas.  "'Truly thou hast created a favourable impression
with the damsel'--well, I mean, it's absurd.  Any ordinary person
would say 'Truly thou art amongst them, old spot,' or something of
that kind."

"Well, you say that, Thomas; you'll be all right,"

"We might put a few songs in," said Dahlia, "and a dance or two."

"I think you've forgotten that we've done only Act I.," remarked
Archie.  "His Majesty's conjuror doesn't really let himself go till
Act II.  Still, I'm all for a song and a dance.  Simpson, come and
Apache with me."

They dashed at each other fiercely.

"Oh, _we'll_ make it go all right," said Myra.




CHAPTER IV

LAST MOMENTS

"Has anybody here seen Kelly?" asked Dahlia, putting her head in at
the billiard-room door.  "I mean Archie."

"I'm waiting here for Kate," I said.  "I mean Myra."

"Oughtn't you to be dressing?  It doesn't matter about me--I'm not on
for a long time."

"A rat-catcher's best suit is not an elaborate one; I can put it on
in about five minutes.  It is now seven-thirty, we begin at
eight-thirty--hence the billiard cue.  More chalk."

"Oh, why aren't you nervous?  How you can stand calmly there----"

"I am nervous.  Look."  I aimed carefully and put the red into a
pocket some miles away.  "There you are.  Have you ever seen me do
that in real life?  Of course not.  If my hand had been steady I
should have been a foot to the right.  Still more chalk."

"Well, I want Archie, and I shall cry if I don't find him.  That's
how I feel."  She sat down and got up again.

"My dear Dahlia," I said solemnly, "now you can understand a father's
feelings--I mean, now, you see what you women have brought on
yourselves.  Who suggested a play?  The women.  Who dragged me into
it?  The women.  Who said rat-catchers always wore whiskers?  The
women.  Who is designing me a pair of whiskers at this moment?  The
wom----Simpson.  Who but for whom (this is going to be a very
difficult sentence) who but for whom, would be just thinking of
dressing leisurely for dinner, instead of which we had a hasty snack,
and have now got to put on heaven knows what?  The women.  Well, it
serves you right."

"Don't be horrid.  I want Archie."  She got up for the third time and
drifted out of the room.

I chalked my cue and went into a pocket without touching anything.
When I say I went in I mean that the ball I was playing with went in.
You do see that?  Very well, then.  I took it out and began to squint
along my cue again, when two hands came suddenly over my eyes and a
voice said; "Guess who is is."

"The Queen of Sheba," I tried.

"Right," said Myra.

I turned and looked at her.

"Golly, you do, you really do!" I said at last.  "Did they always
dress like that in the Bong era?  Short skirts, long pigtail, bare
arms--lovely!"

"'I can sit in the sun and look just twenty-one,'" sang Myra as she
dropped into the sofa.

"Well, just at present you're sitting in the billiard-room and
looking about fifteen....  How are you getting on with your French
this term?  I had a very bad report in the holidays from your
governess.  The extra ninepence a week seems to have been simply
thrown away."

"Aren't you excited?" said Myra, looking at me with sparkling eyes.

"As for calisthenics, well, what I say is, 'My daughter is Church of
England, and if you don't like it, she can come away.  I'm not going
to have her stuffed up with all that nonsense.'"

Myra jumped up.  "Aren't you excited?" she insisted.

"Feel my tongue--I mean my pulse, it's quite normal.  And why?
Because I've forgotten my part, and I'm going to bed."

"It's a great responsibility our beginning the play."

"It is.  Have you ever thought that, if we refused to begin, the play
couldn't continue, and then the audience would be able to go home?
My idea was to tackle the people as they arrive, and come to terms
with them.  I'm sure there's money in it."

"You aren't bothering, are you?"

"Of course, I am.  I'd give a hundred pounds to be out of it.  No, I
wouldn't--I'd give a hundred pounds if you'd always wear that frock
and do your hair like that.  Will you?  And you shall go on with your
French, child."

Myra curtsied prettily.

"And I'll go on with my whiskers.  You haven't seen me in those yet,
have you?"  There was a loud noise without.  "Here they are, coming
in."

It was not the whiskers, however, but Archie and Thomas in full
costume; Archie in green and Thomas in black.

"Hallo," said Archie, "I feel just like a conjuror."

"You look just like a grasshopper," said Thomas.

"My dear friend," said Archie, patting him kindly on his shoulder,
"is that you?  But you oughtn't to be here, you know.  You came up
the hot-water pipe, I suppose?  Yes, yes, but they misdirected
you--the blackbeetle department is in the basement.  Well, well, it
will be easier going down."

"Archie, Dahlia's looking for you."

"It's all right, she found me.  She was nearly in tears.  She said,
'Is that my Archibald or an onion?'  I said 'Fear not, fair one, 'tis
but the early crocus.'  Myra, don't you think they've overdone the
green rather?  To be quite frank, I don't see why a conjuror should
be dressed in green at all."

"To distinguish him from the rat-catcher in brown, the executioner in
black, and the Master of the Gold Fish in red."

"I had thought that perhaps a certain aptitude for legerdemain might
so distinguish him.  But I perceive that I am wrong.  Hallo, why
aren't you in brown then?"

"I'm coming on like this," I explained.  "I was going to have
changed, but now I've seen you two, I don't think I will.  With my
ordinary clothes, one whisker--probably the starboard one--and a
little insouciance, I shall be a great success."

"What annoys me," said Thomas, "is that in the early Bong age they
had no bally pockets.  I've simply got nowhere to keep a
handkerchief."

"Keep it behind the scenes; and then, if you blow your nose
immediately before the execution, and again immediately after it, you
ought to be all right."

"It isn't for that.  It's in case I want to cry."

"It's all right for me," said Archie.  "I've simply got to say, 'Now
can anybody in the audience oblige me with a handkerchief?' and I
shall get dozens."

"Then I shall probably touch you for one.  Great Irvings! is this
really Simpson?"

The Emperor Bong was making a splendid entry, looking (except for his
spectacles) exactly like an emperor.

"Rise, rise," he said.  "Stop grovelling.  Oh, look here, you
fellows, when I say 'On the stomach!' then you must----Oh, I beg your
pardon, Miss Mannering, I didn't see you were there."

"Where are my whiskers?" I asked sternly.

"My dear old chap, I couldn't do them; there wasn't enough to go
round.  I made two nice little eyebrows instead--you'll find them on
your dressing-table.  'Oh, I am the Emperor Bong, I am beautiful,
clever and strong.  I am beauti----'  Do you think I ought to wear my
spectacles or not?"

There was a loud shout of "No!"

"Oh, all right.  But I shall probably fall over the sunset or
something.  Thomas, if you see me wandering into a new moon, tap me
on the head with your axe.  Why isn't my rat-catcher dressed?"

"He was waiting for his whiskers."

"That's perfectly absurd.  You could have grown a pair in the time.
Go and dress at once."

"I refuse to do anything till a quarter-past eight," I said.  "If I
get into my things now, all the atmosphere will have worn off by the
time we begin."

"It's worn off me a long time ago," said Thomas dismally.

"And me," said Myra, with a shiver.

"Well, we're all very miserable," said Archie; "let's have a bottle
of something.  What?  Oh, hush!  Simpson, just ring the bell, and
I'll show you a little conjuring trick.  There's nothing on the table
at present, is there?  No.  Well, now, you watch."




CHAPTER V

THE NIGHT

The play was a great success; I know, because many of the audience
told me so afterwards.  Had they but guessed what was going on behind
the scenes, the congratulations would have been even more
enthusiastic.  For as near as a touch we had to drop the eggproof
curtain and hand the money back.

I am going to give you the opening scene as it was actually said--not
as it was heard across the footlights--and then you will understand.
As you may remember, the _Rat-catcher_ (Me) and the _Maid_ (Myra)
take the stage first, and they introduce themselves in the usual way
to the audience and each other.  The scene is the palace of the
_Emperor Bong_ (Simpson).  Very well then.

_Maid_ (_sweetly_).  Truly his Majesty is a handsome man, and I
wonder not that his people love him.

_Rat-catcher_ (_rather nervous_).  Thou surprisest me.  I saw him in
the wings--in the winter garden just now--that is to say, anon--and
thought him plain.  But hush, here he comes.

(_They salaam, or whatever you call it, and stay there._)

_Rat-catcher_ (_still salaaming_).  What's the silly ass waiting for?
I can't stick this much longer; the blood's all going to my head like
anything.

_Maid_ (_in a similar position_).  He must have forgotten his cue.
Can't you say, "Hush, here he comes" again?

_Rat-catcher_.  I can't say anything out loud in this position.  Do
you think I might come up for a breath?

_Maid_ (_loudly_).  His Majesty tarries.

_Rat-catcher_ (_sotto voce_).  He does.  You've got it.

_Maid_.  Whatever shall we do?  Do think of something.

_Rat-catcher_.  Well, I'm going to rise to the surface.  I'm tired of
being a submarine.  (_They both stand up_.)

_Maid_ (_brilliantly_).  Perchance it was a rat we heard and not his
Majesty.

_Rat-catcher_ (_with equal brilliance_).  Fear not, fair damsel.
Behold, I will investigate.  (_Proceeds to back of stage_.)

_Archie_ (_from wings_).  Come off, you idiot.

_Rat-catcher_ (_always the gentleman--to Maid_).  Tarry a while, my
heart, what time I seek assistance.  (_Exit._)

_Maid_ (_confidentially to audience--to keep the thing going_).
Truly he is a noble youth, though he follows a lowly profession.
'Tis not the apparel that proclaims the man.  Me thinks....

_Me_ (_annoyed_).  Who's an idiot?

_Archie_.  Didn't you see me wink?  That ass Simpson's banged his
nose against a door-post and is bleeding like a pig.  Says it's
because he hadn't got his spectacles.

_Me_ (_still annoyed_).  More likely the champagne.

_Archie_.  They're dropping keys down his back as hard as they can.
Will you and Myra gag a bit, till he's ready?

_Me_ (_excitedly_).  My good fool, how on earth----

_Myra_ (_coming to back of stage_).  But behold he returns.  (_Frowns
imperiously._)

_Rat-catcher_ (_coming on again very unwillingly_).  Ah, fair maid,
'tis thee.  I bring thee good tidings.  I met one in the ante-room, a
long-legged, scurvy fellow, who did tell me that his Majesty was
delayed on some business.

_Maid_.  That must have been his Conjuror--I know him well.
(_Aside._) What's happened?

_Rat-catcher_.  Let us then rest a while, an it please thee.
(_Seizing her by the arm._) Over here.  That ass Simpson's hurt
himself.  We've got to amuse the audience till he's finished bleeding.

_Maid_ (_sitting down with her back to audience_).  I say, is it
really serious?

_Rat-catcher_.  Not for him; it is for us.  Now then, talk away.

_Maid_.  Er--h'm.  (_Coyly._) Wilt not tell me of thy early life,
noble sir, how thou didst become a catcher of rats?

_Rat-catcher_ (_disgusted_).  You coward!  (_Aloud._) Nay, rather let
me hear of thine own life.  (_Aside._) Scored.

_Maid_.  That's not fair.  I asked you first.  (_Modestly._) But I am
such a little thing, and you are so noble a youth.

_Rat-catcher_.  True.  (_Having a dash at it._)  'Twas thus.  My
father, when I was yet a child, didst--did--no, didst--apprentice me
to a salad binger----

_Maid_ (_with interest_).  How dost one bing salads?

_Rat-catcher_ (_curtly_).  Ballad singer.  And I would frequent the
market-place at noon, singing catches and glees, and receiving from
the entranced populace divers coins, curses, bricks and other
ornaments.  One morn, as I was embarked upon a lovely ballad, "Place
me amidst the young gazelles," I was seized right suddenly from
behind.  (_Bored to death._)  I'm sick of this.  We're supposed to be
amusing the audience.

_Maid_.  Oh, go on, I'm getting awfully amused.

_Emperor_ (_audibly from green-room_).  Confound it, it's begun again.

_Executioner_ (_bitterly_).  And to think that I spent hours putting
red ink on my axe!

_Maid_ (_with great presence of mind_).  What's that?  Surely that
was a rat.

_Rat-catcher_ (_greatly relieved_).  It was.  (_Getting up._) Let's
have Archie on, and see if he can amuse them a bit more.  (_Aloud._)
I must finish my tale anon.  Stay here, sweet child, what time I
fetch my trusty terrier.  (_Exit._)

_Maid_.  'Tis a strange story he tells.  How different from my own
simple life.  Born of proud but morbid parents....

_Archie_.  What's up?  Stick to it.

_Me_.  Have you got such a thing as a trusty terrier on you?

_Archie_ (_feeling up his sleeve_).  No.

_Me_.  Well, the audience will be extremely disappointed if I don't
bring one back.  I practically promised them I would.  Look here, why
don't you come on and help?  Everybody is getting horribly bored with
us.

_Archie_ (_delightedly_).  Oh, all right.

_Enter _Rat-catcher_ and Conjuror_.

_Maid_.  But behold he returns _again_!

_Rat-catcher_ (_excitedly_).  Great news, fair lady, which this
long-legged, scurvy fellow I told you of will impart to us.

_Maid_.  Why, 'tis the Conjuror.  Have you news for us, sir?

_Conjuror_ (_with no illusions about the Oriental style_).
Absolutely stop press.  What is it you want to know?  Racing?  The
Bong Selling Plate was won by Proboscis, McSimp up.  Immense
enthusiasm.  Bank rate unchanged--quite right this cold weather.
Excuse me a moment, sir, your moustache is coming off.  No, the left
wing--allow me to lend you a postage stamp.  Do you prefer red or
green?

_Maid_ (_biting her lip_).  Will you not give us news of the Emperor?

_Conjuror_.  I will.  His Majesty has met with a severe accident
whilst out hunting this morning, being bitten by a buffalo.

_Maid_.  Alas, what will my mistress say?

_Conjuror_.  She has already said everything that was necessary.  Her
actual words were: "Just like Bong."

_Rat-catcher_ (_seizing the opportunity_).  His Majesty ordered me to
meet him here at noon.  Methinks I had better withdraw and return
anon.  (_Makes off hurriedly._)

_Conjuror_ (_seizing him_).  Not so.  He bade me command you to stay
and sing to us.  (_Sensation._)

_Rat-catcher_ (_huskily_).  Alas, I have forgotten my voice--that is,
I have left my music at home.  I will go and fetch it.  (_Has another
dash._)

_Conjuror_.  Stay!  Listen!  (_They all listen._)

_Simpson_ (_in wings_).  Thanks, thanks, that will be all right now.
Oh no, quite, thanks.  Oh, is this your key?  Thanks, thanks.  No, it
doesn't matter about the other ones, they don't feel at all
uncomfortable, thanks.  Yes, I think it really did stop it, thanks.

_Conjuror_.  I'm off!  (_Aloud._) His Majesty has regained
consciousness.  (_Exit._)

_Simpson_ (_apologetically_).  Oh, Archie, I've got the billiard-room
key in my----

_Rat-catcher_ (_very loudly to _Maid__).  Hush, here he comes!
(_They salaam._)

(_Enter the Emperor Bong._)




CHAPTER VI

THE CURTAIN GOES DOWN

"Ladies and gentlemen," said Simpson at the supper-table, glass in
hand, "it is my pleasant duty----"

"Bother!" murmured Myra.  "Drinking healths always makes me feel
funny."

"Silence for McSimp," shouted Archie.  "Now then, pass along there,
please.  There's no need to push, you'll all be able to hear.
Gentlemen, the O'Sumph is addressing us impromptu, not to say
unasked."

"It is my pleasant duty," continued Simpson, "as your late Emperor
(_Half-an-hour-late.  How's the probosc?_), to propose the health of
the Rabbits Dramatic Company.  (_Hooray!_)  Great as we are on the
cricket-field (_Wide!_)--great, I say, as we are on the cricket-field
(_Pitch 'em up, Simpson_), we are, I think, still greater in the
halls of Thespis.  (_Don't know the lady._)  Gentlemen, I knew
Irving.  (_Liar!_) I have heard tell of Garrick (_Good!  Ever heard
of Shakespeare?_), but to-night has been a new experience for me.
(_I will--give you--the kee--eys of----._) Ladies and gentlemen, I
propose our very good healths, coupled with the name of our hostess
Miss Mannering."  (_Loud Cheers._)

"That's me," said Myra.

"I single out Miss Mannering," added Simpson, "because I'm sure we
should all like to hear her make a speech."

"Oh, Samuel," said Myra, shaking her head at him, "and I thought it
was because you loved me."

"The Rabbits!  Myra!" we cried.

"Miss Mannering will now address you," announced Archie.  "She will
be glad to answer any questions afterwards; but anyone who interrupts
will be hurled out.  I appeal to you, as Englishmen, to give her a
fair hearing."

Myra stood on a chair, looking lovely, but very lonely, and waited
till we were silent.

"My dear good friends," she began, and then she caught Thomas's eye.
"Hallo, Tommy," she said wistfully....  "My dear good friends, but
why should you say _I'm_ a jolly good fellow, when it isn't my
birthday or anything?  But how _silly_ of you!  Why, of course, we're
_all_ jolly good fellows--and jolly good actors too.  It _has_ been
fun, hasn't it?  ...  Oh, Archie, dear....  I hope we shall all be
here in the summer, don't you?  Well, you can't very well say you
don't, now I've asked you, can you?  You'll have to pretend your
uncles are very ill, and then you needn't come....  Oh,
_please--don't_ look at me like that, you make me want to cry, and I
only want to laugh to-night....  Archie, may I get down?"

"She _is_ a dear," Dahlia whispered to me.  "How you can go on----"

It was Simpson who saved the situation and made us merry and bright
again.  He hastily trotted out the suggestion that we should tour the
country in the summer, playing cricket in the day and _Bong the
Second_ at night.  Archie backed him up at once.

"Only I'm off Bong Two altogether," he said.  "Of course, what we
want is a cricket play.  We shall have to write one ourselves, I
expect; there aren't any really good ones about.  Act I.  Rupert
Vavasour, a dashing bat and the last descendant of an ancient but
impoverished house, is in love with the beautiful but equally
impoverished Millicent.  Milly is being pursued by a rich villain of
the name of Jasper Fordyce, the said Jasper being a bowler of extreme
swiftness, with a qualification for Essex....  Go on, Simpson."

"In order to restore the fallen fortunes of the house, Rupert plays
for Kent as a professional--Binks (R.)--and secures talent money in
six successive matches.  Jasper hears of it, and (Act II.)
assassinates the scorer, bribing a hireling of his own to take the
deceased's place.  In the next match Rupert only scores forty-nine."

"Rupert," continued Thomas, "who had been counting his own jolly
score, and made it eighty-seven, was furious, and determined at all
costs to foil the villain.  Accordingly he went on to bowl in the
next innings and took five wickets for two hundred and thirty-nine,
thus obtaining talent money."

"A little love interest, please, Dahlia," said Archie.

"Now the captain, who was in the secret," said Dahlia, "was in love
with Rupert's sister, which was why he put Binks (R.) on to bowl.  As
soon as Binks had collected his five wickets, Blythe went on, and
took the other five for three runs.  In this way Kent just managed to
win, and so Rupert got more talent money."

"The next match was against Essex--Act III., the great act of the
play--and Jasper Fordyce was playing for the Leyton brigade.  As he
put on his spurs before taking the field, and brushed his sleek black
hair, he smiled sardonically to himself.  Had he not overnight dug
holes in the pitch at the pavilion end, and was not the wicket fiery,
and he notoriously an erratic bowler?"

"Everything points to Simpson playing Jasper," I said, and continued:

"'Heads,' cried Jasper.  It was heads.  'I put you in,' he remarked
calmly.  'What!' said the other in amazement.  Ten minutes later
Binks (R.) and Humphreys were at the wicket.  Binks took first ball
with a touch of nervousness at his heart.  All depended on this
match.  If only he could make four hundred and fifty to-day, he would
be able to pay off the mortgage and marry his Millicent....  'Play.'
Jasper rushed up to the wicket and delivered the ball.  Then before
anybody could see how it happened, Rupert was stretched full-length
upon the sward!"

"I had rather thought of playing Rupert myself," said Archie.  "But
I'm not so sure now."

"Five for two hundred and thirty-nine," I reminded him.  "The part
was written for you."

"But what of Millicent?" said Myra.  "Fearing lest some evil should
overtake her lover she had attended the match clad in a long ulster,
and now she flung this off, revealing the fact that she was in
flannels.  With her hair tucked up beneath her county cap she looked
a slim and handsome boy.  To rush on to the field and take the
injured one's place was the work of a moment.  'Who is this?' said
the umpires in amazement.  'Fear not,' whispered Millicent to
Humphreys, 'I have a birth qualification for the county, and the
gardener coached me for an hour last night.'"

"Once more Jasper rushed up to the crease, and the spectators held
their breath."

"I'm going to be a spectator," I said, "with a breath-holding part.
Sorry--go on, Blair."

"Then Millicent's bat flashed, and, behold! the ball was on the
boundary!  A torrent of cheers rent the air.  Again he bowled, again
the bat flashed.  Jasper ground his teeth."

"The curtain goes down here to represent the passing of an hour.
When it rises again, Millicent's score is four hundred and
twenty-three.  There was dead silence for a moment.  Then Millicent
swung her bat.  And at that the cheers broke out, such cheering as
had never been heard before.  Maclaren's record score was beaten at
last!  'Now surely he will knock his wickets down,' said the
spectators.  Little did they know that until four hundred and fifty
was upon the tins the mortgage could not be paid off!  Four hundred
and thirty--four hundred and forty--four hundred and forty-nine--a
sharply run single--four hundred and fifty!  From the pavilion Rupert
heard the cheers and fainted again."

"It was 'over,' and Millicent had the bowling.  Jasper delivered the
ball, a fast half-volley----"

("Oh, Simpson simply _must_ play Jasper.")

"--and Millicent drove it back hard and true.  Jasper tried to duck,
but it was too late.  He was dead."

"Act IV.  All his money went to Rupert, who was a distant cousin.  He
married Millicent, and they lived happily ever after.  But, though
they are always to be seen at the Tonbridge and Canterbury weeks,
they have never played cricket again.  _Curtain_."

"And bedtime," said Myra suddenly.  "Good-night, everybody."




MARGERY


TO MARGERY--FROM HER UNCLE

My dear Margery,--When I heard that you really had arrived, I got out
the broken tea-cup, filled it at the bath, and drank "To my niece!"
with the greatest enthusiasm possible.  Had I been on the stage I
should then have hurled the cup over my shoulder; and later on the
scene-shifter would have come and collected the bits.  As it was, I
left that part out; and you will forgive me, will you not, dear baby,
when you hear that it was your uncle's last cup, and he in a bad way
financially.

Personally I was all for coming to see you at once.  But you wrote
that you would prefer me to postpone my visit for a week; at the end
of which time you would have settled down, and I should be more in a
position to do you justice--the critic, rather than the mere
reporter.  I don't know if those were quite your words, but that at
any rate was the idea.  So, baby, here I am--a week later, and just
returned from seeing you.  What, you wish to know, were my
impressions?

It is like your cool way, asking me what I think of you.  It was you
who were to have been interviewed by _me_.  You were a stranger, one
short week on our shores; and I wanted to ask you what you thought of
the English ladies, what were your views on our climate and (above
all) what was your opinion of the English press.  My editor had heard
of your landing, and those were the things he wished to know.  Well,
I shall say that your views were undecided.  Two kicks, a cry, and
something very like a sneeze--you haven't quite got the hang of our
language yet.

You know, Margery, there was at one time some talk of your being a
boy; and, in that case, your father and I had decided that you were
to play for Kent.  I was to have bowled to you every evening, and he
would have stood by and said, "You should have come forward to that
one, sir."  At the public schools they call this "coaching."
However, that dream is over now, and the most we can hope for is that
you should marry someone in the eleven.  Your father and I were
discussing it last night (in front of you--oh, what would Mrs Grundy
say?), and we had almost fixed on Woolley; but your mother objected
because he was a professional.  A trivial reason, dear Margery, but
you know what women are.  You gave a little cry just at that moment,
and I know you meant, "Well, why not Mr Hutchings then?"  Well, we
had thought of him, only your mother says he will be too old.  I do
hope, baby, that when you grow up you will be guided by what your
heart says, and not by what your mother says....

Your mother--I think you must be careful in your dealings with that
woman.  Above all, do not let her prejudice you against your uncle.
At one time yesterday we were discussing your personal features.
"Her grannie's mouth," said somebody; "her father's nose,"
volunteered another.  "Look at the darling's eyes, just like her
loving mummy's," was that shameless person's own contribution.  Then
I in haste, "But, I say, what about her uncle?"

Margery, your mother looked at you thoughtfully.  She looked at you
every way.  And then suddenly, in triumph, she cried, "Why, nurse!
Of course!  Her uncle's hair!"

They tell me, Margery, that as a matter of fact your name is
Marjorie; and they say that the other reminds them too much of
Margarine.  That just shows how ignorant they are.  I looked up
"margarine," in the dictionary, and it is called so because of its
"pearly lustre."  If that isn't good enough for them, they must be a
very proud couple.  Anyhow, you are Margery to me: I hope I have a
mind above your commonplace Marjories.

There are many things that I have to say to you, but I feel quite
sure that your mother reads your letters; so perhaps I had better
wait till I can see you alone.  I want you always to insist on
wearing shoes, as a little girl, and not those ghastly
thirty-nine-button boots; also on going to one of the very big
schools if you go to a boarding school at all.  And I want--but I
must talk to your father about it.  I like to think he is still my
ally.  Time was when he too knew all about the bringing up of
children, and though he has handicapped himself by marrying, yet now
and then, when we are alone together, he is almost sensible on the
subject.

Good-bye.  Give my love to your mother.  Perhaps we can trust her
more than we thought, after all.  Ever your loving UNCLE



TO HER UNCLE--FROM MARGERY

My dear Uncle,--Thank you for your letter.  I was just as glad when
they told me about _you_!  And I said to myself, "I must be very nice
to him, because mother and I have been here for years and years
simply, and he's quite new."  And it's unkind of you to say I kicked,
I was only stretching, and one must stretch or one will never grow.
I heard nurse tell mother that, and you _know_ you'd like to have a
tall niece.

I think I shall like you, if you're sure you won't mind my being only
a girl.  I don't think father minds, although he looks very sad about
something every now and then.  He came back late from the office the
other day, and mother told me he'd done such a lot of work, and was
so tired, and I cried all night about it, I was so sorry for him.

Mother _is_ a funny person.  This morning I did my trick of opening
one eye and keeping the other shut, and she got fearfully excited,
and called out "Nurse, nurse, what's the matter with baby, she can't
open one of her eyes!"  And then I simply _had_ to open it, so as I
could wink at nurse to show her what a silly mother we had.  But I
have given up my other joke, of pretending to be dead.  I used to do
it every night, and she would creep out of bed, and come and listen
at my cradle, and....  Well, I'm only a girl, and I shall never go to
a public school, but still I know when a joke ceases to be a joke and
becomes bad form.  So I have given it up.

Oh, talking of bad form, some chemists who had read about me in the
papers sent me a sample of _tooth_ powder.  In rather doubtful taste,
I thought....

I want you to come and see me have my bath.  Mother asks all her
friends, so why shouldn't I ask mine?  Of course, I would rather keep
it private, but if mother is going to make a show of it we may as
well have the right people there.  Do you know, uncle, they actually
do it in a _basin_, although there's a proper bath just next door!  I
know I'm small, but is it quite fair always to be harping on the
fact?  (Twice a day, if you will believe me.)  Of course, mother and
nurse are only women, and they wouldn't understand this.  But I am
sure you, uncle, would be more careful of people's feelings.

I am sorry, dear, but I don't think I shall be able to marry either
Mr Hutchings or Mr Woolley; you see they _are_ rather old for me,
_aren't_ they?  Mother told me yesterday that there is a dear little
boy of four or five playing about somewhere, who will come for me one
day and take me right away from her and father.  _Fancy_!  What fun!

About my name.  Well, I'm afraid it will have to be _Marjorie_ after
all.  Of course, I should prefer it to be _Margery_, but mother
assures me that the owner of the name is _never_ consulted, so I
can't say anything.  But I will always be Margery to you, and we
won't say anything more about it to the others.  Do you see, dear?

And now I must say good-bye, as mother says I want to go to sleep.
She is writing this for me, and some of the things she didn't want to
say at all, but I threatened her with my joke, and then she did.  But
we both send our love.  Your affectionate niece, MARGERY

P.S. 1.--I was weighed yesterday.  I weigh quite a lot of pounds.

P.S. 2.--Come to-morrow at four, and I will show you my toes.




MARGERY'S SOCK


CHAPTER I

When Margery was three months old I wrote a letter to her mother:


"DEAR MADAM,--If you have a copy in Class D at 1s. 10d. net, I shall
be glad to hear from you.  I am, THE BABY'S UNCLE"


On Tuesday I got an answer by the morning post:


"DEAR SIR,--In reply to yours: How dare you insult my child?  She is
in Class A1, priceless, and bought in by the owner.  Four months old
and two days on Christmas Day.  Fancy!  I am,

"THE BABY'S MOTHER"


Margery had been getting into an expensive way of celebrating her
birthday every week.  Hitherto I had ignored it.  But now I wrote:


"DEAR MADAM,--Automatically your baby should be in Class D by now.  I
cannot understand why it is not so.  Perhaps I shall hear from you
later on with regard to this.  Meanwhile I think that the
extraordinary coincidence (all but two days) of the baby's birthday
with Christmas Day calls for some recognition on my part.  What would
Margery like?  You, who are in constant communication with her,
should be able to tell me.  I hear coral necklaces well spoken of.
What do you think?  I remember reading once of a robber who 'killed a
little baby for the coral on its neck'--which shows at any rate that
they are worn.  Do you know how coral reefs are made?  It is a most
fascinating business.

"Then there is a silver mug to be considered.  The only thing you can
drink out of a mug is beer; yet it is a popular present.  Perhaps
you, with your (supposed) greater knowledge of babies, will explain
this.  Meanwhile I am,

"THE BABY'S UNCLE"

"_P.S._--Which is a much finer thing than a mother."


To which her mother:


"MY DEAR BOY,--It is too sweet of you to say you would like to get
baby something.  No, I don't know how coral reefs are made, and I
don't want to.  I think it is wicked of you to talk like that; I'm
sure I sha'n't dare to let her wear anything valuable now.  And I
don't think she really wants a mug.

"I'm sure I don't know what she does want, except to see her uncle
(There!), but it ought to be something that she'll value when she
grows up.  And of course we could keep it for her in the meantime.

"Her father has smoked his last cigar to-day.  Isn't it awful?  I
have forbidden him to waste his money on any more, but he says he
_must_ give me five hundred for a Christmas present.  If he does, I
shall give him that sideboard that I want so badly, and then we shall
both go to prison together.  You will look after baby, won't you?  I
am,

"THE BABY'S MOTHER"

"_P.S._--Which she isn't proud, but does think it's a little bit
classier than an uncle."


And so, finally, I;


"DEAR CHILD,--I've thought of the very thing.  I am, THE BABY'S UNCLE"


That ends Chapter I.  Here we go on to



CHAPTER II

Chapter II finds me in the toy department of the Stores.

"I want," I said, "a present for a child."

"Yes, sir.  About how old?"

"It must be quite new," I said sternly.  "Don't be silly.  Oh, I see.
Well, the child is only a baby."

"Ah, yes.  Now here--if it's at all fond of animals----"

"I say, you mustn't call it 'IT.'  _I_ get in an awful row if _I_ do.
Of course, I suppose it's all right for you, only--well, be careful,
won't you?"

The attendant promised, and asked whether the child was a boy or a
girl.

"And had you thought of anything for the little girl?"

"Well, yes.  I had rather thought of a sideboard."

"I beg your pardon?"

"A sideboard."

"The Sideboard Department is upstairs.  Was there anything else for
the little girl?"

"Well, a box of cigars.  Rather full, and if you have any----"

"The Cigar Department is on the ground floor."

"But your Lord Chamberlain told me I was to come here if I wanted a
present for a child."

"If you require anything in the toy line----"

"Yes, but what good are toys to a baby of four months?  Do be
reasonable."

"What was it _you_ suggested?  A sideboard and a cigar?"

"That was my idea.  It may not be the best possible, but at least it
is better than perfectly useless toys.  You can always blow smoke in
its face, or bump its head against the sideboard.  _Experto crede_,
if you have the Latin."

Whereupon with great dignity I made my way to the lift.

In the Sideboard Department I said: "I want a sideboard for a little
girl of four months, and please don't call her 'IT.'  I nearly had a
row with one of your downstairs staff about that."

"I will try to be careful, sir," he replied.  "What sort of a one?"

"Blue eyes, and not much hair, and really rather a sweet smile....
Was that what you wanted to know?"

"Thank you, sir.  But I meant what sort of a sideboard?"

I took him confidentially by the arm.

"Look here," I said, "you know how, when one is carrying a baby
about, one bumps its head on all the corners?  Well, not too much of
that.  The mothers don't really like it, you know.  They smile at the
time, but ...  Well, not too many corners....  Yes, I like that very
much.  No, I won't take it with me."

The attendant wrote out the bill.

"Number, sir?"

"She's the first.  That's why I'm so nervous.  I've never bought a
sideboard for a child before."

"Your Stores number, I mean, sir."

"I haven't got one.  Is it necessary?"

"Must have a number, sir."

"Then I'll think of a nice one for you....  Let's see--12345, now
does that strike you?"

"And the name?"

"Oh, I can't tell you that.  You must look that up for yourself.
Good-day."

Downstairs I bought some cigars.

"For a little girl of four months," I said, "and she likes them
rather full.  Please don't argue with me.  All your men chatter so."

"I must," said the attendant.  "It's like this.  If she is only four
months, she is obviously little.  Your observation is therefore
tautological."

"As a matter of fact," I said hotly, "she is rather big for four
months."

"Then it was a lie."

"Look here, you give me those cigars, and don't talk so much.  I've
already had words with your Master of the Sideboards and your
Under-Secretary for the Toy Department....  Thank you.  If you would
kindly send them."



CHAPTER III

So there it is.  I have given the spirit, rather than the actual
letter, of what happened at the Stores.  But that the things have
been ordered there is no doubt.  And when Margery wakes up on
Christmas Day to find a sideboard and a box of cigars in her sock I
hope she will remember that she has chiefly her mother to thank for
it.




HOW TO PLAY THE PIANOLA

(FOREWORD.--Margery wishes me to publish the following
correspondence, which has recently passed between us.  It occurs to
me that the name under which I appear in it may perhaps need
explanation.  I hate explanations, but here it is.

When Margery was eight months old she was taught to call me "Uncle."
I must suppose that at this time I was always giving her
things--things she really wanted, such as bootlaces, the best china,
evening papers, and so on--which had been withheld by those in
authority.  Later on these persons came round to my way of thinking,
and gave her--if not the best china, at any rate cake and
bread-and-butter.  Naturally, their offerings, being appreciated at
last, were greeted with the familiar cry of "Uncle."  "No, dear, not
'Uncle,'--'Thank-you'" came the correction.)



I

DEAR THANKYOU,--I've some wonderful news for you!  Guess what it is,
but no, you never will.  Well, I'll tell you.  _I can walk!_  Really
and really.

It is most awfully interesting.  You put one foot out to the right,
and then you bring the left after it.  That's one walk, and I have
done seven altogether.  You have to keep your hands out in front of
you, so as to balance properly.  That's all the rules--the rest is
just knack.  I got it quite suddenly yesterday.  It is such fun; I
wake up about five every morning now, thinking of it.

Of course, I fall down now and then.  You see, I'm only beginning.
When I fall, mother comes and picks me up.  That reminds me.  I don't
want you to call me "baby" any more, now I can walk.  Babies can't
walk, they just get carried about and put in perambulators.  I was
given a lot of names a long time ago, but I forget what they were.  I
think one was something rather silly, like Margery, but I have never
had it used lately.  Mother always calls me O.D. now.

Good-bye.  Write directly you get this.  Your loving O.D.



II

MY DEAR O.D.,--I was so glad to get your letter, because I was just
going to write to you.  What do you think?  No, you'll never
guess--shall I tell you?--no--yes--no; well, I've bought a pianola!

It's really rather difficult to play it properly.  I know people like
Paderewski and--I can only think of Paderewski for the moment--I know
that sort of person doesn't think much of the pianola artist; but
they are quite wrong about it all.  The mechanical agility with the
fingers is nothing, the soul is everything.  Now you can get the
soul, the _con molto expressione_ feeling, just as well in the
pianola as in the piano.  Of course you have to keep a sharp eye on
the music.  Some people roll it off just like a barrel-organ; but
when I see _Allegro_ or _Andante_ or anything of that kind on the
score, I'm on it like a bird.

No time for more now, as I've just got a new lot of music in.  Your
loving THANKYOU

P.S.--When are you coming to hear me play?  I did "Mumbling Mose"
just now, with one hand and lots of soul.  (Signed) PADEREWSKI

P.P.S.--I am glad you can walk.



III

DEAR THANKYOU,--I am rather upset about my walking.  You remember I
told you I had done seven in my last?  Well, this morning I couldn't
do a single one!  Well, I did do one, as a matter of fact, but I
suppose some people would say it didn't count, because I fell down
directly after, though I don't see that that matters--do you,
Thankyou?  But even with that one it was only one, and yet I know I
did seven the day before.  I wonder why it is.  I do it the right
way, I'm sure, and I keep my hands out so as to balance, so perhaps
it's the shoes that are wrong.  I must ask mother to get me a new
pair, and tell the man they're for walks.

Now _do_ write me a nice long letter, Thankyou, because I feel very
miserable about this.  It _is_ right, isn't it, when you have the
right leg out, only to bring the left one just up to it, and not
beyond?  And does it matter which foot you start with?  Let me know
quickly, because father is coming home to-morrow and I want to show
him.  Your loving

O.D.

P.S.--I am glad you like your pianola.



IV

DEAR O.D.,--Very glad to get yours.  If you really want a long
letter, you shall have one; only I warn you that, if once I begin,
nothing less than an earthquake can stop me.  Well, first then, I
played the "Merry Widow Waltz" yesterday to Mrs Polacca, who is a
great authority on music, and in with all the Queen's Hall set, and
she said that my touch reminded her of--I've forgotten the man's name
now, which is rather sickening, because it spoils the story a bit,
but he was one of the real tip-toppers who make hundreds a week, and,
well--that was the sort of man I reminded her of.  If I can do that
with a waltz, it stands to reason that with something classic there'd
be no holding me.  I think I shall give a recital.  Tickets 10s. 6d.
No free seats.  No emergency exit.  It is a great mistake to have an
emergency exit at a recital....

(_Three pages omitted._)

Really, O.D., you must hear me doing the double F in the "Boston Cake
Walk" to get me at my best.  You've heard Kubelik on the violin?
Well, it's not a bit like that, and yet there's just that something
which links great artists together, no matter what their medium of
expression.  Your loving

THANKYOU

_P.S._--Glad you're getting on so well with your walking.



V

DEAREST THANKYOU,--Hooray, hooray, hooray--I did twenty-five walks
to-day!  Father counted.  He says my style reminds him of _Cancer
Vulgaris_ rather.  How many times can _he_ do it?  Not twenty-five on
the third day, I'm sure.

Isn't it splendid of me?  I see now where I was wrong yesterday.  I
got the knack again suddenly this morning, and I'm all right now.
To-morrow, I shall walk round the table.  It is a longish way, and
there are four turns, which I am not sure about.  How _do_ you turn?
I suppose you put the right hand out?  Your very loving O.D.



VI

DEAR O.D.,--I am rather hurt by your letters.  I have written several
times to tell you all about my new pianola, and you don't seem to
take any interest at all.  I was going to have told you this time
that the man in the flat below has sent me a note, just as if it had
been a real piano.  He says he doesn't mind my playing all day, so
long as I don't start before eight in the morning, as he is in his
bath then, and in listening to the music quite forgets to come out
sometimes, which, I can see, might be very awkward.  Write to yours
affectionately, THANKYOU



VII

DARLING THANKYOU,--I am so sorry, dear, and I will come and hear your
pianola to-morrow, and I think it lovely, and you must be clever to
play so well; but you mustn't be angry with me because I am so taken
up with my walking.  You see, it is all so new to me.  I feel as
though I want everybody to know all about it.

Your pianola must be lovely, Thankyou.  _Dear_ Thankyou, could you,
do you think, put all the letters we wrote to each other about my
walking in some book, so that other people would know how to do it
the way I do?  You might call it "Letters on Walking," or "How to
Walk," or--but you could get a better title than I could.  _Do!_
Your very loving O.D.

P.S.--I'm so glad about the pianola, and do you mind if I just tell
you that I _did_ walk round the table, corners and all?



VIII

DEAREST O.D.,--Right you are.  I will think of a good title.  Your
loving THANKYOU




THE KNIGHT OF THE CHIMNEY-PIECE

We don't know his real name, but we have decided to call him Arthur.
("Sir Arthur," I suppose he would be.)  He stands in bronze upon the
chimney-piece, and in his right hand is a javelin; this makes him a
very dangerous person.  Opposite him, but behind the clock (Coward!),
stands the other fellow, similarly armed.  Most people imagine that
the two are fighting for the hand of the lady on the clock, and they
aver that they can hear her heart beating with the excitement of it;
but, to let you into the secret, the other fellow doesn't come into
the story at all.  Only Margery and I know the true story.  I think I
told it to her one night when she wouldn't go to sleep--or perhaps
she told it to me.

The best of this tale (I say it as the possible author) is that it is
modern.  It were easy to have invented something more in keeping with
the knight's armour, but we had to remember that this was the
twentieth century, and that here in this twentieth century was Sir
Arthur on the chimney-piece, with his javelin drawn back.  For whom
is he waiting?

"It all began," I said, "a year ago, when Sir Arthur became a member
of the South African Chartered Incorporated Co-operative Stores
Society Limited, Ten per cents at Par (Men only).  He wasn't exactly
a real member, having been elected under Rule Two for meritorious
performances, Rule One being that this club shall be called what I
said just now; but for nearly a year he enjoyed all the privileges of
membership, including those of paying a large entrance fee and a
still larger subscription.  At the end of a year, however, a dreadful
thing happened.  They made a Third Rule--to wit, that no member
should go to sleep on the billiard-table.

"Of course, Sir Arthur, having only got in under Rule Two, had to
resign.  He had already paid his large entrance fee, and (as it
happened) his second year's subscription in advance.  Naturally, he
was annoyed....

"And that, in fact, is why he stands on the chimney-piece with his
javelin drawn back.  He is waiting for the secretary.  Sir Arthur is
considered to be a good shot, and the secretary wants all the flowers
to be white."

At this point, Margery said her best word, "Gorky," which means "A
thousand thanks for the verisimilitude of your charming and
interesting story, but is not the love element a trifle weak?"
(Margery is a true woman.)

"We must leave _something_ to the imagination," I pleaded.  "The
secretary no doubt had a delightful niece, and Sir Arthur's hopeless
passion for her, after he had hit her uncle in a vital spot, would be
the basis of a most powerful situation."

Margery said "Gorky," again, which, as I have explained, means, "Are
such distressing situations within the province of the Highest Art?"

When Margery says "Gorky" twice in one night it is useless to argue.
I gave in at once.  "Butter," I said, "placed upon the haft of the
javelin would make it slip, and put him off his shot.  He would miss
the secretary and marry the niece."  So we put a good deal of butter
on Sir Arthur, and for the moment the secretary is safe.  I don't
know if we shall be able to keep it there; but in case jam does as
well, Margery has promised to stroke him every day.

However, I anticipate.  As soon as the secretarial life was saved,
Margery said "Agga," which is, as it were, "_Encore!_" or "_Bis!_" so
that I have her permission to tell you that story all over again.
Indeed, I should feel quite justified in doing so.  Instead I will
give you the tragedy of George, the other fellow (no knight he), as
she told it to me afterwards.

"George was quite a different man from Sir Arthur.  So far from being
elected to anything under Rule Two, he got blackballed for the St
John's Wood Toilet Club.  Opinions differed as to why this happened;
some said it was his personal unpopularity (he had previously been
up, without success, for membership of the local Ratepayers
Association); others (among them the proprietor), that his hair grew
too quickly.  Anyhow, it was a great shock to George, and they had to
have a man in to break it to him.  (It's always the way when you have
a man in.)

"George was stricken to the heart.  This last blow was too much for
what had always been a proud nature.  He decided to emigrate.
Accordingly he left home, and moved to Kilburn.  Whether he is still
there or not I cannot say; but a card with that postmark reached his
niece only this week.  It was unsigned, and bore on the space
reserved for inland communications these words: _The old old wish--A
Merry Christmas and a Happy New Year._"

"But what about the javelin?" I asked Margery.  (This fellow had a
javelin too, you remember.)

"_Gorky_," said Margery, for the third time which means--

Well, upon my word, I don't know what it means.  But it would explain
it all.

Meanwhile, Sir Arthur (he was in my story, you know) is still waiting
for the secretary.  In case the butter gives out, have I mentioned
that the secretary wants all the flowers to be white?




THE ART OF CONVERSATION

"In conversation," said somebody (I think it was my grandfather),
"there should always be a give and take.  The ball must be kept
rolling."  If he had ever had a niece two years old, I don't think he
would have bothered.

"What's 'at?" said Margery, pointing suddenly.

"That," I said, stroking it, "is dear uncle's nose."

"What's 'at?"

"Take your finger away.  Ah, yes, that is dear uncle's eye.  The left
one."

"Dear uncle's left one," said Margery thoughtfully.  "What's it
doing?"

"Thinking."

"What's finking?"

"What dear uncle does every afternoon after lunch."

"What's lunch?"

"Eggs, sardines, macaroons--everything."

With a great effort Margery resisted the temptation to ask what
"everything" was (a difficult question), or what everything was doing
(a still more difficult one), and made a statement of her own.

"Santa Claus bring Margie a balloon from daddy," she announced.

"A balloon!  How jolly!" I said with interest.  "What sort are you
having?  One of those semi-detached ones with the gas laid on, or the
pink ones with a velvet collar?"

"Down chimney," said Margery.

"Oh, _that_ kind.  Do you think--I mean, isn't it rather----"

"Tell Margie a story about a balloon."

"Bother," I murmured.

"What's bovver?"

"Bother is what you say when relations ask you to tell them a story
about a balloon.  It means, 'But for the fact that we both have the
Montmorency blood in our veins, I should be compelled to decline your
kind invitation, all the stories I know about balloons being stiff
'uns.'  It also means, 'Instead of talking about balloons, won't you
sing me a little song?'"

"Nope," said Margery.

"Bother, she's forgotten her music."

"What did you say, uncle dear, what did you say?"

I sighed and began.

"Once upon a time there was a balloon, a dear little toy balloon,
and--and----"

"What's 'at?" asked Margery, making a dab at my chest.  "What's 'at,
uncle dear?"

"That," I said, "is a button.  More particularly, a red waistcoat
button.  More particularly still, my top red waistcoat button."

"What's _'at_?" she asked, going down one.

"That is a button.  _Description_: second, red, waistcoat.  _Parents
living_: both.  _Injections diseases_: scarlet fever slightly once."

"What's _'at_?"

"That's a--ah, yes, a button.  The third.  A good little chap, but
not so chubby as his brothers.  He couldn't go down to Margate with
them last year, and so, of course----  Well, as I was saying, there
was once a balloon, and----"

"What's 'a-a-at?" said Margery, bending forward suddenly and kissing
it.

"Look here, you've jolly well got to enclose a stamped addressed
envelope with the next question.  As a matter of fact, though you
won't believe me, that again is a button."

"What's 'at?" asked Margery, digging at the fifth button.

"Owing to extreme pressure on space," I began....  "Thank you.  That
also is a button.  Its responsibility is greater than that of its
brethren.  The crash may come at any moment.  Luckily it has booked
its passage to the----  Where was I?  Oh yes--well, this balloon----"

"What's 'at?" said Margery, pointing to the last one.

"I must have written notice of that question.  I can't tell you
offhand."

"What's 'at, uncle dear?"

"Well, I don't know, Margie.  It looks something like a collar stud,
only somehow you wouldn't expect to find a collar-stud there.  Of
course it may have slipped....  Or could it be one of those red
beads, do you think?  N-no, no, it isn't a bead....  And it isn't a
raspberry; because this is the wrong week for raspberries.  Of course
it might be a----  By Jove, I've got it!  It's a button!"

I gave the sort of war-whoop with which one announces these
discoveries, and Margery whooped too.

"A button!" she cried.  "A dear little button!"  She thought for a
moment.  "What's a button?"

This was ridiculous.

"You don't mean to say," I reproached her, "that I've got to tell you
now what a button is?  _That_," I added severely, pointing to the top
of my waistcoat, "is a button."

"What's 'at?" said Margery, pointing to the next one.

I looked at her in horror.  Then I began to talk very quickly.

"There was once a balloon," I said rapidly, "a dear little boy
balloon, I mean toy balloon, and this balloon was a jolly little
balloon just two minutes old, and he wasn't always asking silly
questions, and when he fell down and exploded himself they used to
wring him out and say, 'Come, come, now, be a little airship about
it,' and so----"

"What's 'at?" asked Margery, pointing to the top button.

There was only one way out of it.  I began to sing a carol in a very
shrill voice.

All the artist rose in Margery.

"Don't sing," she said hurriedly.  "Margie sing.  What will Margie
sing, uncle?"

Before I could suggest anything, she was off.  It was a scandalous
song.  She began by announcing that she wanted to be among the boys,
and (guessing that I should object) assured me that it was no good
kicking up a noise, because it was no fun going out when there
weren't any boys about, you were so lonely-onely-onely ...

Here the tune became undecided; and, a chance word recalling another
context to her mind, she drifted suddenly into a hymn, and sang it
with the same religious fervour as she had sung the other, her fair
head flung back and her hazel eyes gazing into heaven ...

I listened carefully.  This was a bit I didn't recognise....  The
tune wavered for a moment ... and out of it these words emerged
triumphant,

  "Talk of me to the boys you meet,
  Remember me kindly to Regent Street,
  And give them my love in the----"


"What's 'at, uncle?"

"That," I said, stroking it, "is dear uncle's nose."

"What's----"

By the way, would you like it all over again?  No?  Oh, very well.




AFTERNOON SLEEP

  "In the afternoon they came unto a land
  In which it seemed always afternoon."

I am like Napoleon in that I can go to sleep at any moment; I am
unlike him (I believe) in that I am always doing so.  One makes no
apology for doing so on Sunday afternoon--the apology, indeed, should
come from the others, the wakeful parties.

"Uncle?"

"Margery."

"Will you come and play wiv me?"

"I'm rather busy just now," I said, with closed eyes.  "After tea."

"Why are you raver busy just now?  My baby's only raver busy
sometimes."

"Well, then, you know what it's like; how important it is that one
shouldn't be disturbed."

"But you must be beturbed when I ask you to come and play wiv me."

"Oh, well ... what shall we play at?"

"Trains," said Margery eagerly.

When we play trains I have to be a tunnel.  I don't know if you have
ever been a tunnel?  No; well, it's an over-rated profession.

"We won't play trains," I announced firmly, "because it's Sunday."

"Why not because it's Sunday?"

(Oh, you little pagan!)

"Hasn't mummy told you all about Sunday?"

"Oh yes, Maud did tell me," said Margery casually.  Then she gave an
innocent little smile.  "Oh, I called mummy Maud," she said in
pretended surprise.  "I quite _fought_ I was upstairs!"

I hope you follow.  The manners and customs of good society must be
observed on the ground floor where visitors may happen; upstairs one
relaxes a little.

"Do you know," Margery went on with the air of a discoverer, "you
mustn't say 'prayers' downstairs.  Or 'corsets.'"

"I never do," I affirmed.  "Well, anyhow I never will again."

"Why mayn't you?"

"I don't know," I said sleepily.

"Say prehaps."

"Well--_prehaps_ it's because your mother tells you not to."

"Well, 'at's a _silly_ fing to say," said Margery scornfully.

"It is.  I'm thoroughly ashamed of it.  I apologise.  Good-night."
And I closed my eyes again.

"I fought you were going to play wiv me, Mr Bingle," sighed Margery
to herself.

"My name is _not_ Bingle," I said, opening one eye.

"Why isn't it Bingle?"

"The story is a very long and sad one.  When I wake up I will tell it
to you.  Good-night."

"Tell it to me now."

There was no help for it.

"Once upon a time," I said rapidly, "there was a man called Bingle,
Oliver Bingle, and he married a lady called Pringle.  And his brother
married a lady called Jingle.  And his other brother married a Miss
Wingle.  And his cousin remained single....  That is all."

"Oh, I see," said Margery doubtfully.  "Now will you play wiv me?"

How can one resist the pleading of a young cheild?

"All right," I said.  "We'll pretend I'm a little girl, and you're my
mummy, and you've just put me to bed....  Good-night, mummy dear."

"Oh, but I must cover you up."  She fetched a tablecloth, and a
pram-cover, and _The Times_, and a handkerchief, and the cat, and a
doll's what-I-mustn't-say-downstairs, and a cushion; and she covered
me up and tucked me in.

"'Ere, 'ere, now go to sleep, my darling," she said, and kissed me
lovingly.

"Oh, Margie, you dear," I whispered.

"You called me 'Margie'!" she cried in horror.

"I meant 'Mummy.'  Good-night."

One, two, three seconds passed rapidly.

"It's morning," said a bright voice in my ear.  "Get up."

"I'm very ill," I pleaded; "I want to stay in bed all day."

"But your dear uncle," said Margery, inventing hastily, "came last
night after you were in bed, and stayed 'e night.  Do you see?  And
he wants you to sit on his chest in bed and talk to him."

"Where is he?  Show me the bounder."

"'Ere he is," said Margery, pointing at me.

"But look here, I can't sit on my own chest and talk to myself.  I'll
take the two parts if you insist, Sir Herbert, but I can't play them
simultaneously.  Not even Irving----"

"Why can't you play vem simrulaleously?"

"Well, I can't.  Margie, _will_ you let me go to sleep?"

"Nope," said Margery, shaking her head.

"You should say, 'No, thank you, revered and highly respected uncle.'"

"No _hank_ you, Mr Cann."

"I have already informed you that my name is not Bingle; and I have
now to add that neither is it Cann."

"Why neiver is it Cann?"

"That isn't grammar.  You should say, 'Why can it not either?'"

"Why?"

"I don't know."

"Say prehaps."

"No, I can't even say prehaps."

"Well, say I shall understand when I'm a big girl."

"You'll understand when you're a big girl, Margery," I said solemnly.

"Oh, I see."

"That's right.  Now then, what about going to sleep?"

She was silent for a moment, and I thought I was safe.  Then----

"Uncle, just tell me--why was 'at little boy crying vis morning?"

"Which little boy?"

"Ve one in 'e road."

"Oh, that one.  Well, he was crying because his uncle hadn't had any
sleep all night, and when he tried to go to sleep in the
afternoon----"

"Say prehaps again."

My first rejected contribution!  I sighed and had another shot.
"Well, then," I said gallantly, "it must have been because he hadn't
got a sweet little girl of three to play with him."

"Yes," said Margery, nodding her head thoughtfully, "'at was it."




TO JOCK

(ON CHOOSING A PROFESSION)

  When, Jock, I saw you, debonair and bland,
  Shin perilously up the cottage grand
  Piano, with the bread-knife in your hand;--

  When I observed your friendly little stare,
  Your guileless baby face, your general air
  Of "Golly, how on earth did I get _there_?"--

  When I remarked how cheerfully you crashed
  Down on the tea-things, not the least abashed
  To see the same (_my_ wedding present) _smashed_!--

  Then as we wondered (having wiped the tea
  From off this waistcoat)  "What's he going to be?"
  I knew at once why father thought, "The sea."

  * * * * * *

  There are who sit and languidly dictate
  Letters beginning "Yours of even date"--
  Each one designed to rope in six-and-eight;

  Wherefore each letter carefully postpones
  The moment when the other party owns
  His case is badly dished by "_Rex v. Jones_."

  There are who daily in the safe retreat
  Of some Department gather round and bleat
  Scandal and Art, until it's time to eat;

  Return at three, and, having written "Dear
  Sir, your communication of last year
  Duly received and noted"--disappear.

  There are who do not hesitate to shove
  Their views of Babes and Budgets, Life and Love
  On paper--as it might be up above;

  Who, fearless fellows, are not found to flinch
  When some Proprietor essays to pinch
  Their holiest thoughts at eightpence for the inch.

  * * * * * *

  Such, Jock, as these are we who bear your name
  Content (well, almost) with the good old game
  Of moderate Fortune unrelieved by Fame.

  But there are Nobler Souls about the place,
  Such spirits as have built our Island Race,
  Heroes who must, who simply must, have _space_.

  'Twas not to serve the pen that Nature gave
  To these their love of all that's large and brave;
  For Them an ampler life upon the Wave!

  * * * * * *

  So when your father (while I mop the tea)
  Says that he rather thinks you'll go to sea,
  Dear Jock, sweet Jock, your uncle _must_ agree.




MORE CRICKET

TO AN OLD BAT

  _When Vesper trails her gown of grey
    Across the lawn at six or seven
  The diligent observer may_
    (_Or may_) _see, athwart the heaven,
  An aimless rodent on the wing.  Well, that
        Is_ (_probably_) _a Bat....
    In any case I shall not sing of that._

  --------

    O Willow, in our hours of ease
      (That is to say, throughout the Winter),
    I take you sometimes on my knees,
      And careless of the frequent splinter,
  Caress you tenderly, and sigh, and say,
          "Ye Gods, how long till May?"

    And so as soon as April's here
      I do not sob for Spring to show its
    Pale daffodils and all the dear
      Old flowers that keep the minor poets;
  I sing it just because a month (about)
          Will find you fairly out.

    Revered, beloved, O you whose job
      Is but to serve throughout the season--
    To make, if so it be, the Blob,
      And not (thank heaven!) to ask the reason--
  To stand, like Mrs Hemans' little friend,
          Undoubting to the end:

    Old Willow, what a tale to tell--
      Our steady rise, from small beginnings,
    _Ab ovo usque--usque_--well,
      To eighty-four, our highest innings;
  (Ah me, that crowded hour of glorious lives--
          Ten of them, all from drives!)

    Once only have you let me in,
      Through all the knocks we've had together;
    That time when, wanting four to win,
      I fairly tried to tonk the leather--
  And lo! a full-faced welt, without the least
          Warning, went S.S.E.

    A painful scene.  In point of fact
      I'm doubtful if I ought to hymn it;
    Enough to say you went and cracked,
      And left me thinking things like "Dimmit"
  (And not like "Dimmit"), as I heard Slip call
          "Mine!" and he pouched the ball.

    Do you remember, too, the game
      One August somewhere down in Dorset
    When, being told to force the same,
      We straightway started in to force it....
  For half-an-hour or so we saw it through,
          And scratched a priceless two;

    Or how the prayer to play for keeps
      And hang the runs, we didn't need 'em,
    So stirred us, we collected heaps
      With rather more than usual freedom;
  Fifteen in fourteen minutes--till a catch
          Abruptly closed the match?

  * * * * * *

    Well, well--the coming years (if fine)
      Shall see us going even stronger;
    So pouring out the oil and wine,
      Let's sit and drink, a little longer;
  _Here's to a decent average of ten!_
          (Yours is the oil.  Say when....)

  ----------

    _When Morning on the heels of Night
      Picks up her shroud at five and after,
    The diffident observer might
      (Or might not) see, beneath a rafter,
  A pensive rodent upside down.  Well, that
          Is (possibly) a Bat....
    In any case I have not sung of that._




A SCRATCH LOT


I. THE CHOOSING OF THE DAY

As soon as I had promised to take an eleven down to Chartleigh I knew
that I was in for trouble; but I did not realise how great it would
be until I consulted Henry Barton.  Henry is a first-class cricketer,
and it was my idea that he should do all the batting for us, and such
of the bowling as the laws allowed.  I had also another idea, and
this I explained to Henry.

"As you are aware," I said, "the ideal side contains five good bats,
four good bowlers, a wicket-keeper, and Henry Barton."

"Quite so," agreed Henry.

"That is the principle on which one selects an eleven.  Now, I intend
to strike out a line of my own.  My team shall consist of three
authors or journalists, two solicitors, four barristers, a couple
from the Stock Exchange, some civil servants and an artist or two.
How many is that?"

"Nineteen."

"Well, that's the idea, anyhow."

"It's a rotten idea."

"No, it's a splendid idea.  I wonder nobody has thought of it before.
I send a solicitor and a journalist in first.  The journalist uses
the long handle, while the solicitor plays for keeps."

"And where does the artist come in?"

"The artist comes in last, and plays for a draw.  You are very slow
to-day, Henry."

Henry, the man of leisure, thought a moment.

"Yes, that's all very well for you working men," he said at last,
"but what do I go as?  Or am I one of the barristers?"

"You go as 'with Barton.'  Yes.  If you're very good you shall have
an 'H' in brackets after you.  'With Barton (H)'"

The method of choosing my team being settled, the next thing was the
day.  "Any day in the first week in July," the Chartleigh captain had
said.  Now at first sight there appear to be seven days in the week,
but it is not really so.  For instance, Saturday.  Now there's a good
day!  What could one object to in a Saturday?

But do you imagine Henry Barton would let it pass?

"I don't think you'll get eleven people for the Saturday," he said.
"People are always playing cricket on Saturday."

"Precisely," I said.  "Healthy exercise for the London toiler.
That's why I'm asking 'em."

"But I mean they'll have arranged to play already with their own
teams.  Or else they'll be going away for week-ends."

"One can spend a very pretty week-end at Chartleigh."

"H'm, let me think.  Any day in the week, isn't it?"

"Except, apparently, Saturday," I said huffily.

"Let's see now, what days are there?"

I mentioned two or three of the better-known ones.

"Yes.  Of course, some of those are impossible, though.  We'd better
go through the week and see which is best."

I don't know who Barton is that he should take it upon himself to
make invidious distinctions between the days of the week.

"Very well, then," I said.  "Sunday."

"Ass."

That seemed to settle Sunday, so we passed on to Monday.

"You won't get your stockbroker on Monday," said Henry.  "It's
Contanger day or something with them every Monday."

"Stocktaking, don't you mean?"

"I dare say.  Anyhow, no one in the House can get away on a Monday."

"I must have my stockbrokers.  Tuesday."

Tuesday, it seemed, was hopeless.  I was a fool to have thought of
Tuesday.  Why, everybody knew that Tuesday was an impossible day
for----

I forget what spoilt Tuesday's chance.  I fancy it was a busy day for
Civil Servants.  No one in the Home Civil can get away on a Tuesday.
I know that sounds absurd, but Henry was being absurd just then.  Or
was it barristers?  Briefs get given out on a Tuesday, I was made to
understand.  That brought us to Wednesday.  I hoped much from
Wednesday.

"Yes," said Henry.  "Wednesday might do.  Of course most of the
weeklies go to press on Wednesday.  Rather an awkward day for
journalists.  What about Thursday?"

I began to get annoyed.

"Thursday my flannel trousers go to the press," I said--"that is to
say, they come back from the wash then."

"Look here, why try to be funny?"

"Hang it, who started it?  Talking about Contanger-days.
Contanger--it sounds like a new kind of guano."

"Well, if you don't believe me----"

"Henry, I do.  Thursday be it, then."

"Yes, I suppose that's all right," said Henry doubtfully.

"Why not?  Don't say it's sending-in day with artists," I implored.
"Not _every_ Thursday?"

"No.  Only there's Friday, and----"

"Friday is _my_ busy day," I pleaded--"my one ewe lamb.  Do not rob
me of it."

"It's a very good day, Friday.  I think you'd find that most people
could get off then."

"But why throw over Thursday like this?  A good, honest day, Henry.
Many people get born on a Thursday, Henry.  And it's a marrying day,
Henry.  A nice, clean, sober day, and you----"

"The fact is," said Henry, "I've suddenly remembered I'm engaged
myself on Thursday."

This was too much.

"Henry," I said coldly, "you forget yourself--you forget yourself
strangely, my lad.  Just because I was weak enough to promise you an
'H' after your name.  You seem to have forgotten that the 'H' was to
be in brackets."

"Yes, but I'm afraid I really am engaged."

"Are you really?  Look here--I'll leave out the 'with' and you shall
be one of us.  There!  Baby, see the pretty gentlemen!"

Henry smiled and shook his head.

"Oh, well," I said, "we must have you.  So if you say Friday, Friday
it is.  You're quite sure Friday is all right for solicitors?  Very
well, then."

So the day was settled for Friday.  It was rather a pity, because, as
I said, in the ordinary way Friday is the day I put aside for work.



II. THE SELECTION COMMITTEE

The committee consisted of Henry and myself.  Originally it was
myself alone, but as soon as I had selected Henry I proceeded to
co-opt him, reserving to myself, however, the right of a casting vote
in case of any difference of opinion.  One arose, almost immediately,
over Higgins.  Henry said:

(_a_) That Higgins had once made ninety-seven.

(_b_) That he had been asked to play for his county.

(_c_) That he was an artist, and we had arranged to have an artist in
the team.

In reply I pointed out:

(_a_) That ninety-seven was an extremely unlikely number for anyone
to have made.

(_b_) That if he had been asked he evidently hadn't accepted, which
showed the sort of man he was: besides which, what was his county?

(_c_) That, assuming for the moment he had made ninety-seven, was it
likely he would consent to go in last and play for a draw, which was
why we wanted the artist?  And that, anyhow, he was a jolly bad
artist.

(d) That hadn't we better put it to the vote?

This was accordingly done, and an exciting division ended in a tie.

  Those in favour of Higgins  1
  Those against Higgins  1

The Speaker gave his casting vote against Higgins.

Prior to this, however, I had laid before the House the letter of
invitation.  It was as follows (and, I flatter myself, combined tact
with a certain dignity):--

"DEAR----, I am taking a team into the country on Friday week to play
against the village eleven.  The ground and the lunch are good.  Do
you think you could manage to come down?  I know you are very busy
just now with

    Contangers,
    Briefs,
    Clients,
    Your Christmas Number,
    Varnishing Day,
  (_Strike out all but one of these_)

but a day in the country would do you good.  I hear from all sides
that you are in great form this season.  I will give you all
particulars about trains later on.  Good-bye.  Remember me to----.
How is----?  Ever yours.

"_P.S._--Old Henry is playing for us.  He has strained himself a
little and probably won't bowl much, so I expect we shall all have a
turn with the ball."

_Or_, "I don't think you have ever met Henry Barton, the cricketer.
He is very keen on meeting you.  Apparently he has seen you play
somewhere.  He will be turning out for us on Friday.

"_P.P.S._--We might manage to have some bridge in the train."


"That," I said to Henry, "is what I call a clever letter."

"What makes you think that?"

"It is all clever," I said modestly.  "But the cleverest part is a
sentence at the end.  'I will give you all particulars about trains
later on.'  You see I have been looking them up, and we leave
Victoria at seven-thirty A.M. and get back to London Bridge at
eleven-forty-five P.M."

The answers began to come in the next day.  One of the first was from
Bolton, the solicitor, and it upset us altogether.  For, after
accepting the invitation, he went on: "I am afraid I don't play
bridge.  As you may remember, I used to play chess at Cambridge, and
I still keep it up."

"Chess," said Henry.  "That's where White plays and mates in two
moves.  And there's a Black too.  He does something."

"We shall have to get a Black.  This is awful."

"Perhaps Bolton would like to do problems by himself all the time."

"That would be rather bad luck on him.  No, look here.  Here's Carey.
Glad to come, but doesn't bridge.  He's the man."

Accordingly we wired to Carey: "Do you play chess?  Reply at once."
He answered, "No.  Why?"

"Carey will have to play that game with glass balls.  Solitaire.
Yes.  We must remember to bring a board with us."

"But what about the chess gentleman?" asked Henry.

"I must go and find one.  We've had one refusal."

There is an editor I know slightly, so I called upon him at his
office.  I found him writing verses.

"Be brief," he said, "I'm frightfully busy."

"I have just three questions to ask you," I replied.

"What rhymes with 'yorker'?"

"That wasn't one of them."

"Yorker--corker--por----"

"Better make it a full pitch," I suggested.  "Step out and make it a
full pitch.  Then there are such lots of rhymes."

"Thanks, I will.  Well?"

"One.  Do you play bridge?"

"No."

"Two.  Do you play chess?"

"I can."

"Three.  Do you play cricket?  Not that it matters."

"Yes, I do sometimes.  Good-bye.  Send me a proof, will you?  By the
way, what paper is this for?"

"_The Sportsman_, if you'll play.  On Friday week.  Do."

"Anything, if you'll go."

"May I have that in writing?"

He handed me a rejection form.

"There you are.  And I'll do anything you like on Friday."

I went back to Henry and told him the good news.

"I wonder if he'll mind being black," said Henry.  "That's the chap
that always gets mated so quickly."

"I expect they'll arrange it among themselves.  Anyhow, we've done
our best for them."

"It's an awful business, getting up a team," said Henry thoughtfully.
"Well, we shall have two decent sets of bridge, anyway.  But you
ought to have arranged for twelve aside, and then we could have left
out the chess professors and had three sets."

"It's all the fault of the rules.  Some day somebody will realise
that four doesn't go into eleven, and then we shall have a new rule."

"No, I don't think so," said Henry.  "I don't fancy 'Wanderer' would
allow it."



III. IN THE TRAIN

If there is one thing I cannot stand, it is ingratitude.  Take the
case of Carey.  Carey, you may remember, professed himself unable to
play either bridge or chess; and as we had a three-hour journey
before us it did not look as though he were going to have much of a
time.  However, Henry and I, thinking entirely of Carey's personal
comfort, went to the trouble of buying him a solitaire board, with
glass balls complete.  The balls were all in different colours.

I laid this before Carey as soon as we settled in the train.

"Whatever's that?"

"The new game," I said.  "It's all the rage now, the man tells me.
The Smart Set play it every Sunday.  Young girls are inveigled into
lonely country houses and robbed of incredible sums."

Carey laughed scornfully.

"So it is alleged," I added.  "The inventor claims for it that in
some respects it has advantages which even cricket cannot claim.  As,
for instance, it can be played in any weather: nay, even upon the
sick bed."

"And how exactly is it played?"

"Thus.  You take one away and all the rest jump over each other.  At
each jump you remove the jumpee, and the object is to clear the
board.  Hence the name--solitaire."

"I see.  It seems a pretty rotten game."

That made me angry.

"All right.  Then don't play.  Have a game of marbles on the rack
instead."

Meanwhile Henry was introducing Bolton and the editor to each other.

"Two such famous people," he began.

"Everyone," said Bolton, with a bow, "knows the editor of----"

"Oh yes, there's that.  But I meant two such famous chess players.
Bolton," he explained to the editor, "was twelfth man against Oxford
some years ago.  Something went wrong with his heart, or he'd have
got in.  On his day, and if the board was at all sticky, he used to
turn a good deal from QB4."

"Do you really play?" asked Bolton eagerly.  "I have a board here."

"Does he play!  Do you mean to say you have never heard of the
Trocadero Defence?"

"The Sicilian Defence----"

"The Trocadero Defence.  It's where you palm the other man's queen
when he's not looking.  Most effective opening."

They both seemed keen on beginning, so Henry got out the cards for
the rest of us.

I drew the younger journalist, against Henry and the senior
stockbroker.  Out of compliment to the journalist we arranged to play
half-a-crown a hundred, that being about the price they pay him.  I
dealt, and a problem arose immediately.  Here it is.

"A deals and leaves it to his partner B, who goes No Trumps.  Y leads
a small heart.  B's hand consists of king and three small diamonds,
king and one other heart, king and three small clubs, and three small
spades.  A plays the king from Dummy, and Z puts on the ace.  What
should A do?"

Answer.  Ring communication-cord and ask guard to remove B.

"Very well," I said to Dummy.  "One thing's pretty clear.  You don't
bowl to-day.  Long-leg both ends is about your mark.  Somewhere where
there's plenty of throwing to do."

Later on, when I was Dummy, I strolled over to the chess players.

"What's the ground like?" said the editor, as he finessed a knight.

"Sporting.  Distinctly sporting."

"Long grass all round, I suppose?"

"Oh, lord, no.  The cows eat up all that."

"Do you mean to say the cows are allowed on the pitch?"

"Well, they don't put it that way, quite.  The pitch is allowed on
the cows' pasture land."

"I suppose if we make a hundred we shall do well?" asked somebody.

"If we make fifty we shall declare," I said.  "By Jove, Bolton,
that's a pretty smart move."

I may not know all the technical terms, but I do understand the idea
of chess.  The editor was a pawn up and three to play, and had just
advanced his queen against Bolton's king, putting on a lot of check
side as it seemed to me.  Of course, I expected Bolton would have to
retire his king; but not he!  He laid a stymie with his bishop, and
it was the editor's queen that had to withdraw.  Yet Bolton was only
spare man at Cambridge!

"I am not at all sure," I said, "that chess is not a finer game even
than solitaire."

"It's a finer game than cricket," said Bolton, putting his bishop
back in the slips again.

"No," said the editor.  "Cricket is the finest game in the world.
For why?  I will tell you."

"Thanks to the glorious uncertainty of our national pastime," began
the journalist, from his next Monday's article.

"No, thanks to the fact that it is a game in which one can produce
the maximum of effect with the minimum of skill.  Take my own case.
I am not a batsman, I shall never make ten runs in an innings, yet
how few people realise that!  I go in first wicket down, wearing my
M.C.C. cap.  Having taken guard with the help of a bail, I adopt
Palairet's stance at the wicket.  Then the bowler delivers: either to
the off, to leg, or straight.  If it is to the off, I shoulder my bat
and sneer at it.  If it is to leg, I swing at it.  I have a beautiful
swing, which is alone worth the money.  Probably I miss, but the
bowler fully understands that it is because I have not yet got the
pace of the wicket.  Sooner or later he sends down a straight one,
whereupon I proceed to glide it to leg.  You will see the stroke in
Beldam's book.  Of course, I miss the ball, and am given out l.b.w.
Then the look of astonishment that passes over my face, the
bewildered inquiry of the wicket-keeper, and finally the shrug of
good-humoured resignation as I walk from the crease!  Nine times out
of ten square-leg asks the umpire what county I play for.  That is
cricket."

"Quite so," I said, when he had finished.  "There's only one flaw in
it.  That is that quite possibly you may have to go in last to-day.
You'll have to think of some other plan.  Also on this wicket the
ball always goes well over your head.  You couldn't be l.b.w. if you
tried."

"Oh, but I do try."

"Yes.  Well, you'll find it difficult."

The editor sighed.

"Then I shall have to retire hurt," he said.

Bolton chuckled to himself.

"One never retires hurt at chess," he said, as he huffed the editor's
king.  "Though once," he added proudly, "I sprained my hand, and had
to make all my moves with the left one.  Check."

The editor yawned, and looked out of the window.

"Are we nearly there?" he asked.



IV. IN THE FIELD

It is, I consider, the duty of a captain to consult the wishes of his
team now and then, particularly when he is in command of such a
heterogeneous collection of the professions as I was.  I was watching
a match at the Oval once, and at the end of an over Lees went up to
Dalmeny, and had a few words with him.  Probably, I thought, he is
telling him a good story that he heard at lunch; or, maybe, he is
asking for the latest gossip from the Lobby.  My neighbour, however,
held other views.

"There," he said, "there's ole Walter Lees asking to be took off."

"Surely not," I answered.  "Dalmeny had a telegram just now, and Lees
is asking if it's the three-thirty winner."

Lees then began to bowl again.

"There you are," I said triumphantly, but my neighbour wouldn't hear
of it.

"Ole Lees asked to be took off, and ole Dalmeny" (I forget how he
pronounced it, but I know it was one of the wrong ways)--"ole Dalmeny
told him he'd have to stick on a bit."

Now that made a great impression on me, and I agreed with my friend
that Dalmeny was in the wrong.

"When I am captaining a team," I said, "and one of the bowlers wants
to come off, I am always ready to meet him half-way, more than
half-way.  Better than that, if I have resolved upon any course of
action, I always let my team know beforehand; and I listen to their
objections in a fair-minded spirit."

It was in accordance with this rule of mine that I said casually, as
we were changing, "If we win the toss I shall put them in."

There was a chorus of protest.

"That's right, go it," I said.  "Henry objects because, as a
first-class cricketer, he is afraid of what _The Sportsman_ will say
if we lose.  The editor naturally objects--it ruins his chance of
being mistaken for a county player if he has to field first.  Bolton
objects because heavy exercise on a hot day spoils his lunch.
Thompson objects because that's the way he earns his living at the
Bar.  His objection is merely technical, and is reserved as a point
of law for the Court of Crown Cases Reserved.  Markham is a socialist
and objects to authority.  Also he knows he's got to field long-leg
both ends.  Gerald----"

"But why?" said Henry.

"Because I want you all to see the wicket first.  Then you can't say
you weren't warned."  Whereupon I went out and lost the toss.

As we walked into the field the editor told me a very funny story.  I
cannot repeat it here for various reasons.  First, it has nothing to
do with cricket; and, secondly, it is, I understand, coming out in
his next number, and I should probably get into trouble.  Also it is
highly technical, and depends largely for its success upon adequate
facial expression.  But it amused me a good deal.  Just as he got to
the exciting part, Thompson came up.

"Do you mind if I go cover?" he asked.

"Do," I said abstractedly.  "And what did the vicar say?"

The editor chuckled.  "Well, you see, the vicar, knowing, of course,
that----"

"Cover, I suppose," said Gerald, as he caught us up.

"What?  Oh yes, please.  The vicar did know, did he?"

"Oh, the vicar _knew_.  That's really the whole point."

I shouted with laughter.

"Good, isn't it?" said the editor.  "Well, then----"

"Have you got a cover?" came Markham's voice from behind us.

I turned round.

"Oh, Markham," I said, "I shall want you cover, if you don't mind.
Sorry--I must tell these men where to go--well, then, you were
saying----"

The editor continued the story.  We were interrupted once or twice,
but he finished it just as their first two men came out.  I
particularly liked that bit about the----

"Jove," I said suddenly, "we haven't got a wicket-keeper.  That's
always the way.  Can you keep?" I asked the editor.

"Isn't there anyone else?"

"I'm afraid they're all fielding cover," I said, remembering
suddenly.  "But, look here, it's the chance of a lifetime for you.
You can tell 'em all that----"

But he was trotting off to the pavilion.

"Can anybody lend me some gloves?" he asked.  "They want me to keep
wicket.  Thing I've never done in my life.  Of course I always field
cover in the ordinary way.  Thanks awfully.  Sure you don't mind?
Don't suppose I shall stop a ball though."

"Henry," I called, "you're starting that end.  Arrange the field,
will you?  I'll go cover.  You're sure to want one."

Their first batsman was an old weather-beaten villager called George.
We knew his name was George because the second ball struck him in the
stomach and his partner said, "Stay there, George," which seemed to
be George's idea too.  We learnt at lunch that once, in the eighties
or so, he had gone in first with Lord Hawke (which put him on a level
with that player), and that he had taken first ball (which put him
just above the Yorkshireman).

There the story ended, so far as George was concerned; and indeed it
was enough.  Why seek to inquire if George took any other balls
besides the first?

In our match, however, he took the second in the place that I
mentioned, the third on the back of the neck, the fourth on the
elbow, and the fifth in the original place; while the sixth, being
off the wicket, was left there.  Nearly every batsman had some pet
stroke, and we soon saw that George's stroke was the leg-bye.  His
bat was the second line of defence, and was kept well in the block.
If the ball escaped the earthwork in front, there was always a chance
that it would be brought up by the bat.  Once, indeed, a splendid
ball of Henry's which came with his arm and missed George's legs,
snicked the bat, and went straight into the wicket-keeper's hands.
The editor, however, presented his compliments, and regretted that he
was unable to accept the enclosed, which he accordingly returned with
many thanks.

There was an unwritten law that George could not be l.b.w.  I cannot
say how it arose--possibly from a natural coyness on George's part
about the exact significance of the "l."  Henry, after appealing for
the best part of three overs, gave it up, and bowled what he called
"googlies" at him.  This looked more hopeful, because a googly seems
in no way to be restricted as to the number of its bounces, and at
each bounce it had a chance of doing something.  Unfortunately it
never did George.  Lunch came and the score was thirty-seven--George
having compiled in two hours a masterly nineteen; eighteen off the
person, but none the less directly due to him.

"We must think of a plan of campaign at lunch," said Henry.  "It's
hopeless to go on like this."

"Does George drink?" I asked anxiously.  It seemed the only chance.

But George didn't.  And the score was thirty seven for five, which is
a good score for the wicket.



V. AT THE WICKETS

At lunch I said: "I have just had a wire from the Surrey committee to
say that I may put myself on to bowl."

"That is good hearing," said Henry.

"Did they hear?" asked Gerald anxiously, looking over at the
Chartleigh team.

"You may think you're very funny, but I'll bet you a--a--anything you
like that I get George out."

"All right," said Gerald.  "I'll play you for second wicket down, the
loser to go in last."

"Done," I said, "and what about passing the salad now?"

After lunch the editor took me on one side and said: "I don't like
it.  I don't like it at all."

"Then why did you have so much?" I asked.

"I mean the wicket.  It's dangerous.  I am not thinking of myself so
much as of----"

"As of the reading public?"

"Quite so."

"You think you--you would be missed in Fleet Street--just at first?"

"You are not putting the facts too strongly.  I was about to suggest
that I should be a 'did not bat.'"

"Oh!  I see.  Perhaps I ought to tell you that I was talking just now
to the sister of their captain."

The editor looked interested.

"About the pad of the gardener?" he said.

"About you.  She said--I give you her own words--'Who is the tall,
handsome man keeping wicket in a M.C.C. cap?'  So I said you were a
well-known county player, as she would see when you went in to bat."

The editor shook my hand impressively.

"Thank you very much," he said.  "I shall not fail her.  What county
did you say?"

"Part of Flint.  You know the little bit that's got into the wrong
county by mistake?  That part.  She had never heard of it; but I
assured her it had a little bit of yellow all to itself on the map.
Have you a pretty good eleven?"

The editor swore twice--once for me and once for Flint.  Then we went
out into the field.

My first ball did for George.  I followed the tactics of William the
First at the Battle of Hastings, 1066.  You remember how he ordered
his archers to shoot into the air, and how one arrow fell and pierced
the eye of Harold, whereupon confusion and disaster arose.  So with
George.  I hurled one perpendicularly into the sky, and it dropped
(after a long time) straight upon the batsman.  George followed it
with a slightly contemptuous eye... all the way....

All the way.  Of course, I was sorry.  We were all much distressed.
They told us afterwards he had never been hit in the eye before....
One gets new experiences.

George retired hurt.  Not so much hurt as piqued, I fancy.  He told
the umpire it wasn't bowling.  Possibly.  Neither was it batting.  It
was just superior tactics.

The innings soon closed, and we had sixty-one to win, and, what
seemed more likely, fifty-nine and various other numbers to lose.
Sixty-one is a very unlucky number with me--oddly enough I have never
yet made sixty-one; like W.G. Grace, who had never made ninety-three.
My average this season is five, which is a respectable number.  As
Bolton pointed out--if we each got five to-day, and there were six
extras, we should win.  I suppose if one plays chess a good deal one
thinks of these things.

Harold, I mean George, refused to field, so I nobly put myself in
last and substituted for him.  This was owing to an argument as to
the exact wording of my bet with Gerald.

"You said you'd get him out," said Gerald.

"I mean 'out of the way,' 'out of the field,' 'out of----'"

"I meant 'out' according to the laws of cricket.  There are nine
ways.  Which was yours, I should like to know?"

"Obstructing the ball."

"There you are."

I shifted my ground.

"I didn't say I'd get him out," I explained.  "I said I'd get him.
Those were my very words.  'I will get George.'  Can you deny that I
got him?"

"Even if you said that, which you didn't, the common construction
that one puts upon the phrase is----"

"If you are going to use long words like that," I said, "I must refer
you to my solicitor Bolton."

Whereupon Bolton took counsel's opinion, and reported that he could
not advise me to proceed in the matter.  So Gerald took second
wicket, and I fielded.

However, one advantage of fielding was that I saw the editor's
innings from start to finish at the closest quarters.  He came in at
the end of the first over, and took guard for "left hand round the
wicket."

"Would you give it me?" he said to Bolton.  "These country
umpires....  Thanks.  And what's that over the wicket?  Thanks."

He marked two places with the bail.

"How about having it from here?" I suggested at mid-on.  "It's quite
a good place and we're in a straight line with the church."

The editor returned the bail, and held up his bat again.

"That 'one-leg' all right?  Thanks."

He was proceeding to look round the field when a gentle voice from
behind him said: "If you wouldn't mind moving a bit, sir, I could
bowl."

"Oh, is it over?" said the editor airily, trying to hide his
confusion.  "I beg your pardon, I beg your pardon."

Still he had certainly impressed the sister of their captain, and it
was dreadful to think of the disillusionment that might follow at any
moment.  However, as it happened, he had yet another trick up his
sleeve.  Bolton hit a ball to cover, and the editor, in the words of
the local paper, "most sportingly sacrificed his wicket when he saw
that his partner had not time to get back.  It was a question,
however, whether there was ever a run possible."

Which shows that the reporter did not know of the existence of their
captain's sister.

When I came in, the score was fifty-one for nine, and Henry was still
in.  I had only one ball to play, so I feel that I should describe it
in full.  I have four good scoring strokes--the cut, the drive, the
hook and the glance.  As the bowler ran up to the crease I decided to
cut the ball to the ropes.  Directly, however, it left his hand, I
saw that it was a ball to hook, and accordingly I changed my attitude
to the one usually adopted for that stroke.  But the ball came up
farther than I expected, so at the last moment I drove it hard past
the bowler.  That at least was the idea.  Actually, it turned out to
be a beautiful glance shot to the leg boundary.  Seldom, if ever, has
Beldam had such an opportunity for four action photographs on one
plate.

Henry took a sixer next ball, and so we won.  And the rest of the
story of my team, is it not written in the journals of _The
Sportsman_ and _The Chartleigh Watchman_, and in the hearts of all
who were privileged to compose it?  But how the editor took two jokes
I told him in the train, and put them in his paper (as his own), and
how Carey challenged the engine-driver to an eighteen-hole solitaire
match, and how ... these things indeed shall never be divulged.




EX NIHILO FIT MULTUM

I should like to explain just what happened to the ball.  In the
first place it was of an irreproachable length, and broke very
sharply and cleverly from the leg.  (The bowler, I am sure, will bear
me out in this.)  Also it rose with great suddenness ... and, before
I had time to perfect any adequate system of defence, took me on the
knee, and from there rolled on to the off-stump.  There was a
considerable amount of applause on the part of the field, due, no
doubt, to the feeling that a dangerous batsman had been dismissed
without scoring.  I need hardly add that I did not resent this
appreciation.

What I really wished to say to the wicket-keeper was (1) that it was
the first fast wicket I had played on this summer; (2) that it was my
first nought this season, and, hang it, even Fry made noughts
sometimes; and (3) that personally I always felt that it didn't
matter what one made oneself so long as one's side was victorious.
What I actually said was shorter; but I expect the wicket-keeper
understood just as well.  He seemed an intelligent fellow.

After that, I walked nine miles back to the pavilion.

The next man was brushing his hair in the dressing-room.

"What's happened?" he asked.

"Nothing," I said truthfully.

"But you're out, aren't you?"

"I mean that nothing has eventuated--accrued, as it were."

"Blob?  Bad luck.  Is my parting straight?"

"It curls a bit from leg up at the top, but it will do.  Mind you
make some.  I always feel that so long as one's side is
victorious----"

But he was gone.  I brushed my own hair very carefully, lit a
cigarette, and went outside to the others.  I always think that a
nought itself is nothing--the way one carries it off is everything.
A disaster, not only to himself but also to his side, should not make
a man indifferent to his personal appearance.

"Bad luck," said somebody.  "Did it come back?"

"Very quickly.  We both did."

"He wasn't breaking much when I was in," said some tactless idiot.

"Then why did you get out?" I retorted.

"L.b.w."

I moved quickly away from him, and sat next to a man who had yet to
go in.

"Bad luck," he said.  "Second ball, wasn't it?  I expect I shall do
the same."

I thought for a moment.

"What makes you think you will have a second?" I asked.

"To judge from the easy way in which those two are knocking the
bowling about, I sha'n't even have a first," he smiled.

I moved on again.

"Hallo," said a voice.  "I saw you get out.  How many did you make?"

"None," I said wearily.

"How many?"

I went and sat down next to him.

"Guess," I said.

"Oh, I can't."

"Well, think of a number."

"Yes."

"Double it.  Divide by two.  Take away the number you first thought
of.  What does that make?"

"A hundred."

"You must have done it wrong," I said suspiciously.

"No, I am sure I didn't....  No, it still comes to a hundred."

"Well, then, I must have made a hundred," I said excitedly.  "Are you
_sure_ you haven't made a mistake?"

"Quite."

"Then I'd better go and tell the scorer.  He put me down a
blob--silly ass."

"He's a bad scorer, I know."

"By the way," I said, as I got up, "what number did you think of?"

"Well, it's like this.  When you asked me to guess what you had made
I instinctively thought of blob, only I didn't like to say so.  Then
when you began that number game I started with a hundred--it's such
an easy number.  Double--two hundred.  Divided by two--one hundred.
Take away the number you first thought of--that's blob, and you have
a hundred left.  Wasn't that right?"

"You idiot," I said angrily.  "Of course it wasn't."

"Well, don't get sick about it.  We all make mistakes."

"Sick, I'm not sick.  Only just for the moment....  I really
thought....  Well, I shall never be so near a century again."

At lunch I sat next to one of their side.

"How many did you make?" he asked.

"Not very many," I said.

"How many?"

"Oh, hardly any.  None at all, practically."

"How many actually?"

"_And_ actually," I said.  ("Fool.")

After lunch a strange man happened to be talking to me.

"And why did _you_ get out?" he asked.

It was a silly question and deserved a silly answer.  Besides, I was
sick of it all by this time.

"Point's moustache put me off," I said.

"What was wrong with Point's moustache?"

"It swerved the wrong way."

"I was fielding point," he said.

"I'm very sorry.  But if you had recognised me, you wouldn't have
asked why I got out, and if I had recognised you I shouldn't have
told you.  So let's forgive and forget."

I hoped that the subject was really closed this time.  Of course, I
knew that kind friends and relations would ask me on the morrow how
many I had made, but for that day I wanted no more of it.  Yet, as it
happened, I reopened the subject myself.

For with five minutes to play their ninth wicket fell.  Mid-off
sauntered over towards me.

"Just as well we didn't stay in any longer."

"That's _just_ what I thought," I said triumphantly, "all along."




  AN AVERAGE MAN

  Of Tomkins as a natural cricketer
  It frequently has been remarked--that IF
  He'd had more opportunities of bowling,
  And rather more encouragement in batting,
  And IF his averages, so disclosed,
  Batting and bowling, had been interchanged;
  And IF the field as usually set
  Contained some post (at the pavilion end)
  Whose presence rather than a pair of hands
  Was called for; then, before the season finished,
  Tomkins would certainly have played for Kent.

  All this, however, is beside the mark.
  Just now I wish to hymn the glorious day
  (Ignored by those who write the almanacs,
  Unnoticed by the calendar compilers),
  That Wednesday afternoon, twelve months ago
  When Tomkins raised his average to two.

  Thanks to an interval of accidents
  (As "Tomkins did not bat"--and "not out 0,"
  But this more rarely) Tomkins' average
  Had long remained at 1.3.
  (Though Tomkins, sacrificing truth to pride,
  Or both to euphony, left out the dot--

  Left out the little dot upon the three,
  Only employing it to justify
  A second three to follow on the first.
  Thus, if a stranger asked his average
  Tomkins would answer "One point thirty-three"--
  Nor lay the stress unduly on the "one" ...).

  A curious thing is custom!  There are men--
  Plum Warner is, of course, a case in point--
  Who cannot bat unless they go in first.
  Others, as Hayes and Denton, have their place
  First wicket down; while Number Six or so
  Is suited best to Jessop.  As for Tomkins
  His place was always one above the Byes,
  And three above the Wides.  So Custom willed.

  Upon this famous Wednesday afternoon
  Wickets had fallen fast before the onslaught
  Of one who had, as Euclid might have put it,
  No length, or break, but only pace; and pace
  Had been too much for nine of them already.
  Then entered Tomkins the invincible.
  Took guard as usual, "just outside the leg,"
  Looked round the field, and mentally decided
  To die--or raise his average to two.
  Whereon--for now the bowler was approaching,
  He struck a scientific attitude,
  Advanced the left leg firmly down the pitch,
  And swung his bat along the line AB
  (See Ranjitsinhji's famous book of cricket).

  And when the bat and leg were both at B
  (Having arrived there more or less together),
  Then Tomkins, with his usual self-effacement,
  Modestly closed his eyes, and left the rest
  To Providence and Ranjy and the bowler
  (Forming a quorum); two at least of whom
  Resolved that he should neatly glide the ball
  Somewhere between the first and second slips.
  So Tomkins did compile a chanceless two.

  Once more the bowler rushed upon the crease,
  While Tomkins made a hasty calculation
  (Necessitating use of decimals)
  And found his average was 1.5.
  So lustily he smote and drove the ball
  Loftily over long stop's head for one;
  Which brought the decimal to seventy-five,
  And Tomkins, puffing, to the other end.
  Then, feeling that the time for risks was come,
  He rolled his sleeves up, blew upon his hands,
  And played back to a yorker, and was bowled.

  Every position has its special charm.
  You go in first and find as a reward
  The wicket at its best; you go in later
  And find the fielders slack, the bowling loose.
  Tomkins, who went in just above the Byes,
  Found one of them had slipped into his score.
  'Tis wise to take the good the gods provide you--
  And Tomkins has an average of two.




SMALL GAMES



PHYSICAL CULTURE

"Why don't you sit up?" said Adela at dinner, suddenly prodding me in
the back.  Adela is old enough to take a motherly interest in my
figure, and young enough to look extremely pretty while doing so.

"I always stoop at meals," I explained; "it helps the circulation.
My own idea."

"But it looks so bad.  You ought----"

"Don't improve me," I begged,

"No wonder you have----"

"Hush!  I haven't.  I got a bullet on the liver in the campaign of
'03, due to over-smoking, and sometimes it hurts me a little in the
cold weather.  That's all."

"Why don't you try the Hyperion?"

"I will.  Where is it?"

"It isn't anywhere; you buy it."

"Oh, I thought you dined at it.  What do you buy it for?"

"It's one of those developers with elastics and pulleys and so on.
Every morning early, for half-an-hour before breakfast----"

"You _are_ trying to improve me," I said suspiciously.

"But they are such good things," went on Adela earnestly.  "They
really do help to make you beautiful----"

"I _am_ beautiful."

"Well, much more beautiful.  And strong----"

"Are you being simply as tactful as you can be?"

"--and graceful."

"It isn't as though you were actually a relation," I protested.

Adela continued, full of her ideas:

"It would do you so much good, you know.  Would you promise me to use
it every day if I sent you mine?"

"Why don't you want yours any more now?  Are you perfect now?"

"You can easily hook it to the wall----"

"I suppose," I reflected, "there is a limit of beauty beyond which it
is dangerous to go.  After that, either the thing would come off the
hook, or----"

"Well," said Adela suddenly, "aren't I looking well?"

"You're looking radiant," I said appreciatively; "but it may only be
because you're going to marry Billy next month."

She smiled and blushed.  "Well, I'll send it to you," she said.  "And
you try it for a week, and then tell me if you don't feel better.
Oh, and don't do all the exercises to begin with; start with three or
four of the easy ones."

"Of course," I said.

* * * * * * *

I undid the wrappings eagerly, took off the lid of the box, and was
confronted with (apparently) six pairs of braces.  I shook them out
of the box and saw I had made a mistake.  It was one pair of braces
for Magog.  I picked it up, and I knew that I was in the presence of
the Hyperion.  In five minutes I had screwed a hook into the bedroom
wall and attached the beautifier.  Then I sat on the edge of the bed
and looked at it.

There was a tin plate, fastened to the top, with the word "LADIES" on
it.  I got up, removed it with a knife, and sat down again.
Everything was very dusty, and I wondered when Adela had last
developed herself.

By-and-by I went into the other room to see if I had overlooked
anything.  I found on the floor a chart of exercises, and returned
triumphantly with it.

There were thirty exercises altogether, and the chart gave

(1) A detailed explanation of how to do each particular exercise;

(2) A photograph of a lady doing it.

"After all," I reassured myself, after the first bashful glance, "it
is Adela who has thrust this upon me; and she must have known."  So I
studied it.

Nos. 10, 15 and 28 seemed the easiest; I decided to confine myself to
them.  For the first of these you strap yourself in at the waist,
grasp the handles, and fall slowly backwards until your head touches
the floor--all the elastic cords being then at full stretch.  When I
had got very slowly halfway down, an extra piece of elastic which had
got hitched somewhere came suddenly into play, and I did the rest of
the journey without a stop, finishing up sharply against the towel
horse.  The chart had said, "Inhale going down," and I was inhaling
hard at the moment that the towel horse and two damp towels spread
themselves over my face.

"So much for Exercise 10," I thought, as I got up.  "I'll just get
the idea to-night, and then start properly to-morrow.  Now for No.
15."

Somehow I felt instinctively that No. 15 would cause trouble.  For
No. 15 you stand on the right foot, fasten the left foot to one of
the cords, and stretch it out as far as you can....

What--officially--you do then, I cannot say....

Some people can stand easily upon the right foot, when the left is
fastened to the wall ... others cannot ... it is a gift....

Having recovered from my spontaneous rendering of No. 15 I turned to
No. 28.  This one, I realised, was extremely important; I would do it
twelve times.

You begin by lying flat on the floor, roped in at the waist, and with
your hands (grasping the elastic cords) held straight up in the air.
The tension on your waist is then extreme, but on your hands only
moderate.  Then, taking a deep breath, you pull your arms slowly out
until they lie along the floor.  The tension becomes terrific, the
strain on every part of you is immense.  While I lay there, taking a
deep breath before relaxing, I said to myself, "The strain will be
too much for me."

I was wrong.  It was too much for the hook.  The hook whizzed out,
everything flew at me at once, and I remembered no more....

As I limped into bed, I trod heavily upon something sharp.  I
shrieked and bent down to see what had bitten me.  It was a tin plate
bearing the words "LADIES."

* * * * * * *

"Well?" said Adela, a week later.

I looked at her for a long time.

"When did you last use the Hyperion?" I asked.

"About a year ago."

"Ah! ... You don't remember the chart that went with it?"

"Not well.  Except, of course, that each exercise was arranged for a
particular object according to what you wanted."

"Exactly.  So I discovered yesterday.  It was in very small type, and
I missed it at first."

"Well, how many did you do?"

"I limited myself to Exercises 10, 15, and 28.  Do you happen to
remember what those were for?"

"Not particularly."

"No.  Well, I started with No. 10.  No. 10, you may recall, is one of
the most perilous.  I nearly died over No. 10.  And when I had been
doing it for a week, I discovered what its particular object was."

"What?"

"'_To round the forearm!_'  Yes, madam," I said bitterly, "I have
spent a week of agony ... and I have rounded one forearm."

"Why didn't you try another?"

"I did.  I tried No. 15.  Six times in the pursuit of No. 15 have I
been shot up to the ceiling by the left foot ... and what for, Adela?
'_To arch the instep!_'  Look at my instep!  Why should I want to
arch it?"

"I wish I could remember which chart I sent you," said Adela,
wrinkling her brow.

"It was the wrong one," I said....

There was a long silence.

"Oh," said Adela suddenly, "you never told me about No.  28."

"Pardon me," I said, "I cannot bear to speak of 28."

"Why, was it even more unsuitable than the other two?"

"I found, when I had done it six times, that its object was stated to
be, '_To remove double chin._'  That, however, was not the real
effect.  And so I crossed out the false comment and wrote the true
one in its place."

"And what is that?" asked Adela.

"'_To remove the hook,_'" I said gloomily.




CROQUET


PROLOGUE

"I hear you're very good at croquet," said my hostess.

"Oh, well," I said modestly.  (The fact is I can beat them all at
home.)

"We have the North Rutland champion staying with us.  He's very keen
on a game.  Now then, how can we manage?"

This was terrible.  I must put it off somehow.

"_Is_ there a north to Rutland," I began argumentatively.  "I always
thought----"

"Yes, I see.  He shall play with Jane against you and Miss Middleton.
By the way, let me introduce you all."

We bowed to each other for a bit, and then I had another shock.  The
N.R. champion's mallet was bound with brass at each end (in case he
wanted to hit backwards suddenly) and had a silver plate on it.
Jane's had the brass only.  It was absurd that they should play
together.

I drew Miss Middleton on one side.

"I say," I began nervously, "I'm frightfully sorry, but I quite
forgot to bring my mallet.  Will it matter very much?"

"I haven't one either."

"You know, when my man was packing my bag, I particularly said to
him, 'Now, don't forget to put in a mallet.'  He said, 'Shall I put
the spare one in too, sir, because the best one's sprung a bit?'"

"Oh, I've never had one of my own.  I suppose when one is really
good----"

"Well, to tell you the truth, I've never had one either.  We're
fairly in for it now."

"Never mind, we'll amuse ourselves somehow, I expect."

"Oh, I'm quite looking forward to it."



CHAPTER I

They kicked off from the summer-house end, and, after jockeying for
the start a bit, the N.R. champion got going.  He went very slowly
but very surely.  I watched anxiously for ten minutes, expecting my
turn every moment.  After a quarter of an hour I raised my hat and
moved away.

"Shall we sit down?" I said to Miss Middleton.

"We shall be in the way if we sit down here, sha'n't we?"

"Outside that chalk line we're safe?"

"I--I suppose so."

We moved outside and sat down on the grass.

"I never even had a chalk line," I said mournfully.

"It's much more fun without."

"You know," I went on, "I can beat them all at home.  Why even
Wilfrid----"

"It's just the same with me," said Miss Middleton.  "Hilda did win
once by a frightful fluke, but----"

"But this is quite different.  At home it would be considered jolly
bad form to go on all this time."

"One would simply go in and leave them," said Miss Middleton.

"You know, it's awful fun at home.  The lawn goes down in terraces,
and if you hit the other person's ball hard enough you can get it
right down to the bottom; and it takes at least six to get back on
the green again."

Miss Middleton gurgled to herself.

"We've got a stream ... round our lawn," she said, in gasps.  "It's
such a joke ... and once ... when Hilda..."



CHAPTER II

"May I call you 'Mary?'" I said; "we're still here."

"Well, we have known each other a long time, certainly," said Miss
Middleton.  "I think you might."

"Thanks very much."

"What hoop is he at?"

"He's just half-way."

"I suppose, when he's finished, then, Jane does it all?"

"It practically comes to that.  I believe, as a matter of form, I am
allowed a shot in between."

"That won't make any difference, will it?"

"No...."

"It's awfully hot, isn't it?"

"Yes....  Do you bicycle much?"

"No....  Do you?"

"No.  I generally sleep in the afternoons."

"Much the best thing to do.  Good-night."

"Good-night."



CHAPTER III

"Wake up," I said.  "You've been asleep for hours.  Jane is playing
now."

"Oh, I'm so sorry," said Mary, still with her eyes closed.  "Then I
missed your turn.  Was it a good one?"

"Absolutely splendid.  I had a very long shot, and hit the champion.
Then I took my mallet in both hands, brought it well over the
shoulder--are you allowed to do that, by the way?"

"Yes, it's hockey where you mustn't."

"And croqueted him right down to the house--over beds, through
bushes, across paths--the longest ball I've ever driven."

"I hope you didn't make him very cross.  You see, he may not be used
to our game."

"Cross?  My dear girl, he was fairly chuckling with delight.  Told me
I'd missed the rest of my turn.  It seems that if you go over two
beds, and across more than one path, you miss the rest of your turn.
Did you know that?"

"I suppose I did really, but I'd forgotten."

"And here I am again.  Jane will be even longer.  He's lying on the
grass, and taking sights for her just now....  Why didn't you answer
my last letter?"



CHAPTER IV

"It's this passion for games," I said, waking up suddenly, "which has
made us Englishmen what we are.  Here we have a hot July afternoon,
when all Nature is at peace, and the foreigner is taking his siesta.
And what do we do?  How do we English men and women spend this hot
afternoon?  Why, immediately after lunch, in one case even before the
meal has been digested, we rush off to take part in some violent game
like croquet.  Hour after hour the play goes on relentlessly; there
is no backing out on our part, no pleading for just five minutes in
which to get our wind.  No, we bear our part manfully, and----  Are
you awake by any chance, or am I wasting all this?"

"Of course I'm awake," said Mary, opening her eyes.

"What years I have known you!  Do you remember those days when we
used to paddle together--the mixed paddling at Brighton?"

"Ah, yes.  And your first paint-box."

"And your doll----"

"And the pony----"

"And the--good-night."

"G'night."



CHAPTER XVIII

"But how absurd," said Mary, "when we've only just met."

"Oh, but come; it was about two years ago that you let me call you
'Mary.'"

"True," said Mary thoughtfully.

"And you can't say we aren't suited to one another.  We both play
without the chalk line."

"So we do.  Yet ... Oh, I can't say all at once.  Give me a little
time."

"I'll give you three of Jane's hoops.  That's about six months."



CHAPTER XX

"Twenty-eight," said the North Rutland champion.  "That's what I won
the championship by, I remember."

"It's a good winning score," I said.  "Do they play much in North
Rutland?"

"I'm afraid it's been very slow for you and Miss Middleton," said
Jane.

"Not exactly slow," I said.

"We've been talking a lot of nonsense," explained Miss Middleton.

"Not exactly nonsense," said I.

"Oh, it was," said Miss Middleton, "you know it was."

"I suppose it was," I sighed.  "Well, we'll try again to-morrow."

"Right," said the champion.  "But I shall use my other mallet."




GARDENING

There may be gardeners who can appear to be busy all the year
round--doing even in the winter their little bit under glass.  But
for myself I wait reverently until the twenty-second of March is
here.  Then, spring having officially arrived, I step out on to the
lawn, and summon my head-gardener.

"James," I say, "the winter is over at last.  What have we got in
that big brown-looking bed in the middle there?"

"Well, sir," he says, "we don't seem to have anything, do we, like?"

"Perhaps there's something down below that hasn't pushed through yet?"

"Maybe there is."

"I wish you knew more about it," I say angrily; "I want to bed out
the macaroni there.  Have we got a spare bed, with nothing going on
underneath?"

"I don't know, sir.  Shall I dig 'em up and have a look?"

"Yes, perhaps you'd better," I say.

Between ourselves, James is a man of no initiative.  He has to be
told everything.

However, mention of him brings me to my first rule for young
gardeners--


  Never sow Spring Onions and New Potatoes in the
  same bed


I did this by accident last year.  The fact is, when the onions were
given to me I quite thought they were young daffodils; a mistake
anyone might make.  Of course, I don't generally keep daffodils and
potatoes together; but James swore that the hard round things were
tulip bulbs.  It is perfectly useless to pay your head-gardener
half-a-crown a week if he doesn't know the difference between
potatoes and tulip bulbs.  Well, anyhow, there they were in the
herbaceous border together, and they grew up side by side; the onions
getting stronger every day and the potatoes more sensitive.  At last,
just when they were ripe for picking, I found that the young onions
had actually brought tears to the eyes of the potatoes--to such an
extent that the latter were too damp for baking or roasting, and had
to be mashed.  Now, as everybody knows, mashed potatoes are beastly.



THE RHUBARB BORDER

gives me more trouble than all the rest of the garden.  I started it
a year ago with the idea of keeping the sun off the young carnations.
It acted excellently, and the complexion of the flowers was improved
tenfold.  Then one day I discovered James busily engaged in pulling
up the rhubarb.

"What are you doing?" I cried.  "Do you want the young carnations to
go all brown?"

"I was going to send some in to the cook," he grumbled.

"To the cook!  What do you mean?  Rhubarb isn't a vegetable."

"No, it's a fruit."

I looked at James anxiously.  He had a large hat on, and the sun
couldn't have got to the back of his neck.

"My dear James," I said, "I don't pay you half-a-crown a week for
being funny.  Perhaps we had better make it two shillings in future."

However, he persisted in his theory that in the spring people stewed
rhubarb in tarts and ate it!

Well, I have discovered since that this is actually so.  People
really do grow it in their gardens, not with the idea of keeping the
sun off the young carnations but under the impression that it is a
fruit.  Consequently, I have found it necessary to adopt a firm line
with my friends' rhubarb.  On arriving at any house for a visit, the
first thing I say to my host is, "May I see your rhubarb bed?  I have
heard such a lot about it."

"By all means," he says, feeling rather flattered, and leads the way
into the garden.

"What a glorious sunset," I say, pointing to the west.

"Isn't it," he says, turning round; and then I surreptitiously drop a
pint of weed-killer on the bed.

Next morning I get up early and paint the roots of the survivors with
iodine.

Once my host, who for some reason had got up early too, discovered me.

"What are you doing?" he asked.

"Just painting the roots with iodine," I said, "to prevent the
rhubarb falling out."

"To prevent what?"

"To keep the green fly away," I corrected myself.  "It's the new
French intensive system."

But he was suspicious, and I had to leave two or three stalks
untreated.  We had those for lunch that day.  There was only one
thing for a self-respecting man to do.  I obtained a large plateful
of the weed and emptied the sugar basin and the cream jug over it.
Then I took a mouthful of the pastry, gave a little start, and said,
"Oh, is this rhubarb?  I'm sorry, I didn't know."  Whereupon I pushed
my plate away and started on the cheese.



ASPARAGUS

Asparagus wants watching very carefully.  It requires to be tended
like a child.  Frequently, I wake up in the middle of the night and
wonder if James has remembered to put the hot-water bottle in the
asparagus bed.  Whenever I get up to look I find that he has
forgotten.

He tells me to-day that he is beginning to think that the things
which are coming up now are not asparagus after all, but young
hyacinths.  This is very annoying.  I am inclined to fancy that James
is not the man he was.  For the sake of his reputation in the past I
hope he is not.



POTTING OUT

I have spent a busy morning potting out the nasturtiums.  We have
them in three qualities--mild, medium and full.  Nasturtiums are
extremely peppery flowers, and take offence so quickly that the
utmost tact is required to pot them successfully.  In a general way
all the red or reddish flowers should be potted as soon as they are
old enough to stand it, but it is considered bad form among
horticulturists to pot the white.

James has been sowing the roses.  I wanted all the pink ones in one
bed, and all the yellow ones in another, and so on; but James says
you never can tell for certain what colour a flower is going to be
until it comes up.  Of course, any fool could tell then.

"You should go by the picture on the outside of the packet," I said.

"They're very misleading," said James.

"Anyhow, they must be all brothers in the same packet."

"You might have a brother with red hair," says James.

I hadn't thought of that.



GRAFTING

Grafting is when you try short approaches over the pergola in
somebody's else's garden, and break the best tulip.  You mend it with
a ha'penny stamp and hope that nobody will notice; at any rate not
until you have gone away on the Monday.  Of course in your own garden
you never want to graft.

I hope at some future time to be allowed--even encouraged--to refer
to such things as the most artistic way to frame cucumbers, how to
stop tomatoes blushing (the hom[oe]opathic method of putting them
next to the French beans is now discredited), and spring fashions in
fox gloves.  But for the moment I have said enough.  The great thing
to remember in gardening is that flowers, fruits and vegetables alike
can only be cultivated with sympathy.  Special attention should be
given to backward and delicate plants.  They should be encouraged to
make the most of themselves.  Never forget that flowers, like
ourselves, are particular about the company they keep.  If a hyacinth
droops in the celery bed, put it among the pansies.

But above all, mind, a firm hand with the rhubarb.




GOLF


CHAPTER I

The documents in the case are these:


_Him to Me_

"Come and play golf on Thursday.  What is your handicap?  I expect
you will be too good for me."


_Me to Him_

"MY GOOD THOMAS,--Don't be silly.  I will play you at cricket,
tennis, lawn tennis, football (both codes), croquet, poker-patience,
high diving and here-we-go-round-the-mulberry-bush.  If you insist, I
will take you on at prisoners' base and billiards.  Moreover I can
dance the _pavane_.  Yours ever,

"ADOLPHUS

"_P.S._--Anyhow, I haven't any clubs."


_Him to Me_

"MY DEAR ASS,--I gather that you aren't a golfer; well, why not begin
on Thursday?  There will be nobody else playing probably.  Meet me at
Victoria eleven-five.  My brother is away, and I will lend you his
clubs."


_Me to Him_

(Telegram)

"Is your brother out of England?  Wire reply."


_Him to Me_

"Yes.  Sicily."


_Me to Him_

"Right you are then."



CHAPTER II

"You know," I said to Thomas in the train, "I have played a little on
a very small island off the coast of Scotland, but it was such a very
small island that we never used a driver at all, or--what's that
other thing called?--a brassy.  We should have been into the sea in
no time.  But I rather fancy myself with a putter."

"You might go round with a putter to-day."

"I might, but I sha'n't.  I expect to use the wooden clubs with great
ease and dexterity.  And I think you will find that I can do some
business with the mashie.  What's a niblick?"

"The thing you get out of bunkers with."

"Then I sha'n't want that."



CHAPTER III

The fateful moment arrived.  Thomas presented me with a ball called
the Colonel, and a caddie offered me Thomas's brother's driver.  He
also asked me what sort of tee I should like.

I leant upon my club and looked at him.  Then I turned to Thomas.

"Our young friend Hector," I said, "is becoming technical.  Will you
explain?"

"Well, do you want a high or a low one?"

"I want to hit this Colonel ball very hard in the direction of that
flag.  What do you recommend?"

"Well, that's just as you----"

"I think a medium one.  Slow to medium."

The preliminaries being arranged, I proceeded to address the ball.
My own instinct was to take the address as read and get to business
as soon as possible, but in the presence of an expert like Hector I
did not dare to omit the trimmings.  As it was, after every waggle I
felt less and less like hitting the Colonel.  When at last I did let
fly it was with feelings of relief that I discovered, on returning an
eye to the spot, that the tee was indeed empty.  I shaded my eyes and
gazed into the middle distance.

"No," said Thomas, "it's more to the right."  He indicated a spot in
the foreground, about ten yards E.N.E.  "There you are."

"That isn't _my_ ball."

"Yes, sir," said Hector, grinning.

"May I have it back?"

Thomas laughed and smote his own into the blue.  "You go on from
there," he said.

"I'm still aiming at the same flag?"

"Go on, you ass."

I went on.  The ball again rolled ten yards to the east.

"I don't know why we're going in this direction," I said.  "If I get
much further east I shall have to send back Bartlett.  You know, I
don't believe the Colonel is taking this seriously.  He doesn't seem
to me to be trying at all.  Has he ever been round the course before?"

"Never.  He's quite new to it."

"There you are.  He'll come down at the ditch for a certainty."

I played my third.  A third time we went ten yards to the east--well,
perhaps with a touch of north in it again.  And this time Hector gave
a sudden snort of laughter.

I leant upon my club, and stared him into gravity.  Then I took
Thomas by the coat and led him on one side.

"There are, Thomas," I said, "other things than golf."

"There are," he agreed.

"A man may fail temporarily at the game and yet not be wholly
despicable."

"True."

"He may, for instance, be able to dance the _pavane_ with grace and
distinction."

"Quite so."

"Well then, _will_ you take this giggling child away and explain to
him that I am not such an ass as I appear?  Tell him that the
intellectuals of Brook Green think highly of my mental powers.
Assure him that in many of the best houses at Wandsworth Common I am
held to be an amusing raconteur.  Remind him of my _villanelle_ 'To
Autumn.'  For heaven's sake make him understand that my reputation
does not stand or fall with my ability to use this brassy thing.  I'm
not a golf professional."

Thomas allowed himself to smile.  "I will tell him," he said, "that
you are not a golf professional."

We veered right round to the east with my fourth and then I became
desperate.

"Why," I shouted, "do I hit the ball with a ridiculous club like
this?  I could send it farther with a cricket bat.  I could push it
straighter with a billiard cue.  Where's that bag?  I am going to
have a lucky dip."

I dipped, and came up with what Thomas called a cleek.  "Now then," I
said.  I didn't stop to address the Colonel, I simply lashed at him.
He flew along the ground at a terrific pace.

"Well kept down," said Thomas admiringly.

"By Jove!" I cried, "that's never going to stop.  See how he flies
along ... now he breasts the slope ... look, he is taking the water
jump....  Ah, he has crossed his legs, he's down."

"This," I said to Thomas as we walked after the Colonel, "is golf.  A
glorious game."

"What nonsense," I said to Thomas, "they put in comic papers about
golf.  All that about digging up the turf! ... and missing the ball!
... and breaking the clubs!  I mean, I simply don't see how one
_could_!  Let's see, I've played four, haven't I?"

"Five," said Thomas.  "What I am wondering," he added, "is why you
should have been afraid of using any club in your small island off
the coast of Scotland."



CHAPTER IV

_Twenty Strokes After_

"The green, the green," I shouted joyfully, in the manner of the
ancient Greeks, though I was only on the edge of it.

"Go on," said Thomas.

I took a careful aim and put the white down.

"You see," I said carelessly, leaning on my putter.




STUMP CRICKET

April will soon be here," said Miss Middleton, with a sigh of
happiness.

"Bless it," I agreed.  "My favourite month.  Twelve," I added
conversationally, "is my lucky number, and Thursday the day of the
week on which I do least work.  When next the twelfth of April falls
on a Thursday, which may not be for centuries, look out.  Something
terrific will happen."

"It's about now that one begins to wonder if one is in form, or
likely to be."

"Just about now," I agreed.  "I always say that when the draw is
announced for the semi-finals of the English Cup, in which, of
course, I take not the slightest interest whatever, and in fact
hardly know what teams are left in for it, though I must say I hope
Southampton wins this year, because, after all, Fry did play for them
once, but they'll have a bit of a job to beat the Wolves you
know--and then there's Newcastle and Fulham after that, and of
course, you can't be ..."

"I'm tired of that sentence," said Miss Middleton.

"So was I.  I only wanted to make it clear that I have no use for
these spectacular gladiatorial combats.  Give me cricket, the game
of----"

Miss Middleton did not appear to be listening.

"Do you bowl as fast and as good a length as you talk?" she asked
thoughtfully.

"No.  More swerve perhaps.  And I bowl with my head a good deal."

"I see.  Quite different.  Well, then, will you coach me this spring?
Do, there's a dear."

"I should love to.  I know all the things to say."

She got up excitedly.

"Come along then.  I've got the rippingest bat.  But you must promise
not to bowl too fast."

I had said that I knew all the things to say, but as a matter of fact
there is only one thing to say: "You should have come out to 'er,
sir."  (Or, I suppose, in Miss Middleton's case, "You should have
come out to him, madam.")  It's a silly remark to make, because it is
just what one is always doing.  At school I could come out to
anything that was straight and not too high; the difficulty lay in
staying in.  Nobody ever told me how to do that.

Miss Middleton led the way to a walled-in tennis lawn, which lay next
to the broccoli tops and things, and was kept away from it by only
six feet of brick.  If it had simply been a question of cabbage I
should have said nothing, but there would be grapes there too.

"I know," said Miss Middleton.  "But we must play against a wall.
Don't bowl too much to leg."

I hadn't bowled since October the Fourth.  The first post-October
ball was a trifle over-pitched, and a little too much to the right.
All the same I was just saying, "You should have come out to that
one," when there was a crash from the direction of long-on.

"By Jove, I didn't know you were so good.  Was that the grapes?"

"How awful!  Yes.  It simply seemed to fly off the bat.  I did ask
you not to bowl there, didn't I?"

She looked so penitent that I had to comfort her.

"It's all right," I said consolingly.  "I had a man there.  You would
have been out all the way.  Besides," I went on, "a little air will
do the grapes good.  They stay all the time in one hot room, and then
when they go out into the cold, they don't muffle up, and the natural
consequence is----  Or am I thinking of influenza?"

"Never mind.  We must remember not to do it again, that's all.  Give
me some to cut."

There are several ways of cutting.  For myself, I was taught to cut
"square" with the left leg across and "late" with the right, the
consequence being that I can do neither.  W.G. (to work downwards)
generally uses the fore-arm for the stroke, Ranji the wrist.  Miss
Middleton keeps both feet together and puts her whole body into it;
and the direction in which the ball travels is towards long-on.
There was another crash.

"Golf is your game," I said admiringly.  "You lay it dead on the
greenhouse every time."

"I say, what _shall_ we do?  Father will be furious."

I looked at my watch.

"I can just catch the three-twenty-five," I said.

"Oh, don't be a coward, when it's all your fault for bowling so
badly."

"Perhaps the glass is insured," I suggested.  "It is generally."

"It's insured against hail," she said doubtfully.

I looked at the sky.  It was one of the most beautiful blues I have
seen.

"No," said Miss Middleton sadly.

"It will be a point for lawyers to argue, I fancy, what is actually
meant by hail.  You would probably define it at once as aqueous
vapour cooled down in the atmosphere to the freezing point of water."

"I don't know.  Perhaps I should."

"But 'hail' here obviously has a wider significance.  I take it to
mean 'anything that descends suddenly from the clouds.'  I haven't
'Williams on Real Property' with me, but----"

"Come on," said Miss Middleton, "let's say it does mean that.  And
could you, _please_, keep them a bit more on the off?"

"It's no good my keeping them there if you don't."

The worst of coaching--I speak now as an expert--is that it is so
difficult to know what to say when a lady whirls her bat twice round
her head, gives a little shriek, gets the ball on the knee, and says,
"What ought I to have done then?"  The only answer I could think of
was "Not that."

"I thought you knew all about coaching," she said scornfully.

"But, you see, it depends on what you were wanting to do," I said
meekly.  "If it was a drive you should have come out to it more, and
if it was a cut you should have come down on it; while if it was a
Highland fling you lacked _abandon_, and if you were killing a
wasp----"

"A good coach would know what was the best thing to do with that
particular ball, wouldn't he?  And that's just what he would tell
you."

"He wouldn't know," I said modestly.  "You don't often meet that sort
of ball in good cricket."

"No, I suppose not.  That's why I didn't know what to do, I expect.
You know I generally know exactly what to do, only I can't do it."

"Is that really so?" I cried excitedly.  "Why, then, of course, you
ought to coach _me_!"

* * * * * * *

We had a very jolly afternoon.  I fancy I shall be in some form this
year.  Miss Middleton is one of the best bowlers I have seen, but I
brought off some beautiful shots.  I wanted some tea badly afterwards.

"What glorious days we have now," said Miss Middleton's mother, as
she handed me a cup.

"Glorious," said Miss Middleton's father.

"H'm, yes," I said doubtfully.  "But you know I'm afraid it won't
last.  It's beginning to look rather like--like hail."

"Yes," said Miss Middleton.  "We both thought so."




EXPLORING

    Come, gather around, my 'earties, and listen
        a while to me,
    For I 'ave a yarn to spin you, a yarn of the
        Polar Sea;
    It's as true as I'm standing here, lads, as true as it
        blows a gale,
    That I was the first as nearly burst a-finding the
        Great Big Nail--
  As sworn to by Etukishook, Gaukrodger, J. C. Clegg,
        Sir Fortescue Flannery, and the Cardinal
        Merry del Val.

    It was all of a parky morning that wunnerful fourth
        of March,
    When I put on a hextry weskit and made for the
        Marble Arch;
    So I sez good-bye to my country, "Lunnon," I sez,
        "adoo!"
    And I up and strode down the Edgware Road
        athirsting to see it through,
  Followed by Etukishook, Gaukrodger, J. C. Clegg,
        Sir Fortescue Flannery, and the Cardinal
        Merry del Val.

    I 'adn't no blooming gum-drops, I 'adn't no polar
        bears,
    I 'adn't no sextant neither, but I thinks to myself,
        "'Oo cares?"
    And I waggled my watch-chain jaunty, which was
        jewelled in every hole.
    "I can always steer by my cumpas 'ere, it's pointing
        straight to the Pole."
  _So_ it is!" said Etukishook, Gaukrodger, J. C. Clegg,
        Sir Fortescue Flannery, and the Cardinal
        Merry del Val.

    I walked for the 'ole of that morning, then I sez
        to myself, "Old son,
    This here is a dash-for-the-Pole like, and it's
        darn little dash you've done."
    So I enters an 'andy station, and I sez to the
        man in the 'utch,
    "'Ere, gimme a ticket as goes to Wick--no, a
        first-return--'ow much?--
  Ah, and five third singles for Etukishook, Gaukrodger,
        J. C. Clegg, Sir Fortescue Flannery, and the
        Cardinal Merry del Val."

    We sailed from Wick to the norrard for 'undreds
        of days and nights.
    Till we came at last to the ice-floes and followed the
        Northern Lights,
    The Horroreo-boreo-balis, which it turned us all
        'orrible pale,
    And I sez to my men, "To-morrow and then we
        shall land at the Great Big Nail."
  "'Ooray!" said Etukishook, Gaukrodger, J. C. Clegg,
        Sir Fortescue Flannery and the Cardinal Merry
        del Val.

    'Twas the cumpas as went and found it--it seemed
        to have turned its head,
    It would spin like mad for a minute and then it
        would lay like dead;
    It took on just like a wild thing, you'd almost 'a'
        sworn it cried,
    Till at last it shot through the glass and got right up
        on its end and died.
  "That _proves_ it," cried Etukishook, Gaukrodger,
        J. C. Clegg, Sir Fortescue Flannery, and the
        Cardinal Merry del Val.

    We gave three cheers for ole England and we up
        with the Union Jack,
    And we plugged our pipes and we smoked
        'em and we thought about getting back;
    But a wunnerful pride so filled us as we sat on top
        of the Ball,
    That innocent tears (the first for years) rolled out
        of the eyes of all.
  Partikerlarly out of those of Etukishook, Gaukrodger,
        J. C. Clegg, Sir Fortescue Flannery, and the
        Cardinal Merry del Val.

    Then I called for a pen and paper, and I wrote to
        the King, "Dear King,
    "I've found the Pole, and I'm tying a piece of it up
        with string;
    I'll send it round in the morning for your Majesty's
        grace to see
    Just drop me a wire, if you like it, sire, and I'll
        collar the lot!  _Signed_: Me.
  _Witnesses_: Etukishook, Gaukrodger, J. C. Clegg, Sir
        Fortescue Flannery and the Cardinal Merry
        del Val."

    So that's how it 'appened, my 'earties, no matter
        what others may say.
    (Did they _see_ the Pole?  They didn't!  That
        _proves_ I 'ad took it away).
    It's as true as I'm standing here, lads, as true as
        _The Daily Mail_,
    That I was the first as nearly burst a-finding the
        Great Big Nail.




SHOPPING

"If you _should_ happen to be in Regent Street tomorrow at four" (ran
the assignation), "just where what's the name of the street comes
into it, and a lady in a very pretty new mauve coat and skirt bows to
you, raise your hat and say 'Crisis' and she will let you help her
with her shopping."

My guess at the name of the street was successful.  I raised my hat
and said "Good-afternoon."

"But you had to say 'Crisis,'" said Miss Middleton.  "That's the
password."

"I can't.  I've sworn I'll never say it again.  I took a most fearful
oath.  Several people heard me taking it, and swooned."

"But how do I know you're the right one if you don't say it?  Well, I
suppose I shall have to let you come.  I've just lost mother; she
went in at the silver department and out at the art fabrics--like
people when they can't pay for their hansoms."

"Yes, that's bad.  'The accused, who appeared to feel her position
acutely, gave a false address.'  What are you going to buy?"

"Well, I thought I'd just help you get _your_ presents first."

"I'm not giving any this Christmas.  I gave a lot only a year ago."

"Oh, but haven't they paid you any wages since then?"

"Yes, a few trifling sums, only----  Quick, there's your mother!"  I
pulled Miss Middleton hastily into the nearest shop and shut the door.

"What fun!" she said breathlessly.  "Mother _loves_ hide-and-seek."

Mrs Middleton hurried past, covered with parcels, and dived into
another door.

"It's quite safe now," I said.  "Let's go and----"

"What can I have the pleasure of showing you?" said a soothing voice
at our backs.

We turned round in alarm.

"Er--we only just--let me see, _what_ was it you wanted?" said Miss
Middleton to me.

"I don't really want anything.  I was going to help you buy one of
those--you know."

"Yes, but I've got that.  I know there was _something_ you said you
wanted very much."

"Probably tea."

"Tiaras," explained Miss Middleton hastily.  "Of course."

"Certainly, madam," said the shopwalker.  "If you will just sit
down," he continued, leading us to a little room out of the main
stream of shoppers, "I will send somebody to attend you."

We sat down mechanically.  I leant my stick against a showcase and
balanced my hat on the top of it.

"Now you've done it," I said.  "How many tiaras shall we have?  I've
got nearly four pounds."

"We needn't have any.  We can say we don't much care about their
selection."

"Or that we wanted one specially built for us."

"One goes into dozens of shops without buying _anything_," said Miss
Middleton cheerily.

"I never do," I replied gloomily.  "Look out, here he is."

An attendant advanced briskly towards us.  I put my hands in my
pockets and tried to count my money.

"Tiaras, madam?  Certainly.  About what price?"

"Tell him about three pounds eight and six," I whispered to Miss
Middleton.  "Three pounds nine," I corrected, as I ran another
sixpence to ground.

"Here is a beautiful one at two hundred and fifty pounds."

"Too much," I prompted softly.

"Oh," broke in Miss Middleton brightly, "I'm so sorry--such a silly
mistake!  We wanted neck-chains, not tiaras!  Barbara has a tiara
already, hasn't she?" she appealed to me.

"Two," I said quickly.  "If not three."

"I'm so sorry," said Miss Middleton, with a dazzling smile.  "The
first gentleman must have misunderstood.  Of course we gave her a
tiara last year."

The man was disappointed; I saw that.  But the smile melted him, and
he went off in all friendliness.

"Tiara doesn't sound very much like neck-chain," I remarked after a
pause.

"Oh, don't you think so?  It depends how you say it.  Like Beauchamp
and Cholmondeley."

"And what is it when pronounced properly?"

"It's a chain that hangs round your neck, and when you don't quite
know what to say to anybody you play with it carelessly.  Same as men
smoking cigarettes, only better for you."

"I see.  Well, here we have a hundred of the best."

The attendant got to business at once.

"This one," he said, holding up rather a jolly one, "comes out at ten
guineas."

"Tell him," I whispered to Miss Middleton, "that we've only come out
with three."

"That's _very_ pretty," she said.  "Are those moon-stones?"

"Yes, madam.  The fashionable stone this year."

"It's more for next year that we want it."

"I should say this season.  I don't think you will find a prettier
one than this, madam."

"It's very sweet.  But aren't they unlucky, unless you happen to have
been born in the right month?"  She turned to me.  "When is Barbara's
birthday?"

"May," I said unhesitatingly.  "I mean March."

"Anyhow," said Miss Middleton.  "I know it's wrong for moonstones,
because I was thinking of giving her some two years ago, and it had
to "be opals instead."

"We both thought of it," I said.

Miss Middleton looked at me so admiringly that I began to get
reckless.

"Besides, we don't know the size of her neck," I went on.  "And she
never smokes--I mean she never doesn't know what to say to anybody.
So I think we should be making a mistake if we gave her this.  I do
indeed.  Now if it had been anybody else but Barbara----"

The man looked from one to the other of us in bewilderment.

"If you could show us some hatpins instead?" said Miss Middleton
hurriedly, before he could open his mouth.

"This is excellent," I said, as he retired in confusion; "we're
working down well.  All we've got to do now is to wait till he comes
back and then say that we're sorry but we meant hairpins.  With
hair-pins you're practically there."

"Supposing they only had gold ones?"

"Then we should point out that they wouldn't go with Barbara's
curiously-coloured hair.  You leave this to me.  I can finish it off
now on my head.  At the same time I'm sorry I'm not going to spend
_anything_."

"Oh, but you are," said Miss Middleton.  "You're going to give me and
mother tea."

"Of course I am," I agreed.

* * * * * * *

After tea I went back to the shop by myself.

"I want," I said "a trifle for about three pounds.  A moonstone
pendant or something.  Yes, that's very sweet.  No, I'll take it with
me."

They packed it in a pretty little box for me, and I'm going to send
it to Miss Middleton on the twenty-fourth.  I am putting in a card
with the words "From Barbara" on it.  As I said, I am not giving any
presents myself this year, but I do think that Barbara should repay
at least some of the kindnesses which have been showered upon her so
wantonly.




CHESS

(The author cannot lay claim to any great technical knowledge of
chess, but he fancies that he understands the spirit of the game.  He
feels that, after the many poems on the Boat Race, a few bracing
lines on the Inter-University Chess Match would be a welcome change.)

  This is the ballad of Edward Bray,
    Captain of Catherine's, Cambridge Blue--
  Oh, no one ever had just his way
    Of huffing a bishop with KB2!

  The day breaks fine, and the evenings brings
    A worthy foe in the Oxford man--
  A great finesser with pawns and things,
    But quick in the loose when the game began.

  The board was set, and the rivals tossed
    But Fortune (alas!) was Oxford's friend.
  "Tail," cried Edward, and Edward lost;
  So Oxford played from the fireplace end.

  We hold our breath, for the game's begun--
    Oh, who so gallant as Edward Bray!
  He's taken a bishop from KQ1,
    And ruffed it--just in the Cambridge way!

  Then Oxford castles his QB knight
    (He follows the old, old Oxford groove;
  Though never a gambit saw the light
    That's able to cope with Edward's move).

  The game went on, and the game was fast,
    Oh, Oxford huffed and his King was crowned;
  The exchange was lost, and a pawn was passed,
    And under the table a knight was found!

  Then Oxford chuckled; but Edward swore,
    A horrible, horrible oath swore he;
  And landed him one on the QB4,
    And followed it up with an RQ3.

  Time was called; with an air of pride
    Up to his feet rose Edward Bray.
  "Marker, what of the score?" he cried.
    "What of the battle I've won this day?"

  The score was counted; and Bray had won
    By two in honours, and four by tricks,
  And half of a bishop that came undone,
    And all of a bishop on KQ6.

  * * * * * *

  Then here's to Chess: and a cheer again
    For the man who fought on an April day
  With never a thought of sordid gain!
    England's proud of you, Edward Bray!




PROGRESSIVE BRIDGE

There were twelve tables numbered A, B, C, up to--well, twelve of
them, and I started at E, because my name is Ernest.  Our host
arranged us and, of course, he may have had quite another scheme in
his mind.  If so, it was an extraordinary coincidence that my
partner's name was Ethel.  She herself swore it was Millicent, but I
doubt if one can trust a woman in these matters.  She looked just
like an Ethel.  I had never seen her before, I shall never see her
again, but she will always be Ethel to me.

There is only one rule at progressive bridge, and that is, if you
lose you go to the next table, and if you win you stay where you are.
In any case you get a fresh partner each time.  That being so, it
seemed hardly worth while to ask Ethel what she discarded from.  As
it happened, though, she began it.

"I discard from strength," she said.

"So do I," I agreed gladly.  We already had a lot in common.  "Great
strength returns the penny," I added.

"What's that?"

"Moderate strength rings the bell.  It's a sort of formula I say to
myself, and brings luck.  May I play to hearts?"

Ethel discarded a small heart on the first round of clubs, and a
small club on the first round of hearts.  After which, systematically
and together, we discarded from great weakness.  What with the revoke
and other things they scored hundreds and thousands that game.

"You know, where providence goes wrong," I said, "is in
over-estimating our skill.  Providence thinks too highly of us.  It
thinks that if it gives us a knave and two tens between us we can get
a grand slam."

"Yes; and I think--I think, perhaps, that just the least little bit
it underrates Dorothy's abilities."

"Indeed?" I said.  Dorothy was the person who had just taken two
hundred and ninety-eight off us.

"Yes.  You see Dorothy has played before, and I don't think
providence knew."

"It rather looks like that."

"Mind," said Ethel graciously, "I don't blame providence for not
knowing."

Dorothy laughed, and cut for me.  I dealt myself three aces, and went
no trumps.  To my surprise Dorothy's partner doubled, and led the ace
of hearts.

"One moment," I said, and I took it up, and looked at the back of it.
Then I looked at the back of my own ace of hearts.  Then I looked at
the front of it again, and swore very softly, and played it.

"I'm very sorry," I apologised at the end of the game.  "I had a wolf
in sheep's clothing, an ass in a lion's skin.  You saw me play the
three of hearts.  Well, do you know--it's very sad--he actually
pretended to be the ace.  Hid his head behind one card, and his feet
behind another, and only--well, I thought it was the ace."

At the end of the round Ethel and I moved on.

"Good-bye," I said to Dorothy, "I like watching you play.  If you
wait here I shall be round again soon."

My next partner was called Aggie.  Ethel addressed her as Mary, but
she was much too lively for Mary.  I had never seen her before, I
shall never see her again, but she will always be Aggie to me.

She began at once:

"I discard from weakness, partner.  I like hearts led, I never go
spades on my own, I live on tapioca and toadstools, and the
consequence was----"

"It's the same with me," I said, "except about tapioca.  I don't like
tapioca.  In fact I always--er--discard from tapioca.  Otherwise we
agree.  It's your deal.  Now," I said to Ethel, "we shall see what
providence thinks of our comparative merits."

Providence made no mistake.  In the whole round my partner and I
scored once only.  _Chicane_ in spades.  I moved on to G.  I should
never see Ethel again.

"I always play the Canadian discard," said Violet, "and I like spades
led."

I need hardly say that Aggie, whom Ethel called Mary, spoke of Violet
as Diana.  But she looked much more like Violet, and she will always
be Violet to me.  I had never seen her before though, and I shall
never see her again.

"So do I," I said.  "Do you know Canada at all?  I always wish I had
been there."

"I go a good deal to Switzerland," said Violet.  "Are you fond of
bridge?"

"No, never; that is, I mean, 'Very.'  Shall we cut?"

The "Canadian discard" hardly does itself justice under that name.
It is no mere discard, but embraces all the finer points of bridge.
It leads through weakness, and blocks your partner's long suits, and
trumps his tricks; and, though I couldn't discover any recognised
system about it, revokes now and then.  I, too, from tact or
sympathy, or some such motive, played the Canadian discard for all I
was worth.  We got to H without any difficulty....

J, K and L may be passed by, for nothing happened there.  For some
reason "I" was left out, or, rather, run into J.  I cannot understand
the point of this.  To every man his table, and I feel convinced that
I should have done remarkably well at "I."  I had been looking
forward to it all the evening.  I don't much care about betting, but
I am prepared to wager a hundred pounds that I should have got a
grand slam at "I."

It was somewhere down in the X's that I met Maud.  I had been round I
don't know how many times, and was feeling quite giddy.  Alice,
Elizabeth, Iris, Mabel--they were all forgotten when I came to play
with Maud.  Hepzibah (on my right) called her Millicent or something
like that, but I knew really that her name must be Maud.  I had never
seen her before, I shall never see her again, but she will always be
Maud to me.

"I discard from hearts," I said.  "I like my weakest suit led, I have
revoked three times this evening, at table G on the right-hand side
of the fireplace I played the 'Canadian discard,' and I shall never
play it again, at K as you go round the lamp I had four aces and my
partner went spades, I've had rotten luck all through, and I'm
enjoying myself very much.  Shall we be very cautious, or would you
like to play a dashing game?"

"Oh, let's dash," said Maud.

I dealt, and went no trumps on two aces.  To my great surprise
Hepzibah's partner doubled and led the ace of clubs.

"One moment," I said, and I took it up and looked at the back of it.
Then I looked at the back of my own ace of clubs.  Then I looked at
the front of it, and swore very softly, and played it.

"I'm very sorry," I began at the end of the game, "but----"

"Haven't we met before?" said Maud, with a smile.

I looked at her hard.  "By Jove!  Ethel!" I cried.

"My name's Millicent," said Maud, "and seeing that we met for the
first time a few hours ago----"

"Yes, you were my first partner, 'Ethel.'"

"I'm sorry.  Who is Ethel?"

"I beg your pardon," I apologised.  "But I always call my first
partner at progressive bridge Ethel.  It's a sort of hobby with me."

"I see," said Maud--I mean Ethel.  Well, I suppose I must call her
Millicent now.  Though I had never seen her before, and shall never
see her again, she will always be Millicent to me.




DRESSING UP


I. AT A PAGEANT

Our episode is the tenth and last and (I may add unofficially) the
most important.  The period of it is 1750.  In order to lead up to it
properly it has been found necessary to start the first episode at 53
B.C.  This gives the audience time to get hungry for us.  "At last!"
they say, when we come on, "this _is_ the end, Maria."

The Duchess of Kirkcudbright (N.B.) says that they don't say that at
all.  They say, "Why, Henry, it's 1750!  I had no idea.  How the time
flies when you are enjoying yourself.  We _must_ stay to the end; a
few minutes won't make any difference now, and it's only cold mutton."

I must explain that it is the Duchess of Kirkcudbright (N.B.)--and
_do_ remember the "N.B.," because she is very particular about
it--who in this episode condescends to dance a minuet with me: that
stately old measure (if you don't trip over the sand-hill opposite
Block D.) which so delighted our forefathers.  It is a very sad
thing, but though the whole pageant, as I have explained, hinges upon
us, yet our names and description do not appear upon the programme.
We are put down briefly, and I think libellously, as "Revellers."
However, we learnt that we were really people of some position--right
in the smart set, by all accounts; so I decided to be Lord Tunbridge
Wells, and my partner the Duchess of Kirkcudbright (N.B.).  That is
just like her--to be a whole county, when I am only a watering-place.

We are supposed to do the "revelling" as soon as we come in.  As I
lead my partner down the steps I say to her, "Our revel, I think?"
and she replies, "Shall we revel, or shall we sit it out?"  After a
little discussion we decide to revel, partly because there is nowhere
to sit down, and partly because the prompter has his eye on us.  Now
I don't know what your idea of revelling is, but mine would include
at the very least a small ginger ale and a slice of seed-cake.  I
mean, I don't think that would be overdoing it at all.  But do you
suppose we are allowed this--or indeed anything?  Not likely.  And
yet it is just a little touch of that sort which gives verisimilitude
to a whole pageant.

Before we have really got through our revelling the band strikes up,
and suddenly we are all in our places for the minuet.  Now, although
you have paid your two guineas like a man, and are sitting in the
very front row, you mustn't think we have taken all this trouble of
learning the minuet simply to amuse you.  Not at all.  We are doing
it for the sake of King George the Second, no less; a command
performance.  And so, when we are all in a line, just ready to start,
and I whisper to my partner, "I say, I'm awfully sorry, but I've
forgotten the minuet.  Let's do the Lancers instead," she whispers
back, "Quick!  George is looking at me.  Is my patch on straight?"
"No," I say.  "Now, don't forget you have to smile all the time.
Hallo, we're off."

I am not going to describe the dance to you, because it is too
difficult.  But I may say briefly that there's a whole lot of things
you do with your feet, and another whole lot with your hands; that
you have to sway your body about in an easy and graceful manner; that
you must keep one eye on the ground to see that you don't fall over
the sandhills, and another eye on your partner to see that she is
doing it all right, and the two of you a joint eye on everybody else
to see that the affair is going symmetrically.  And _then_--then
comes the final instruction: "Don't look anxious.  Smile, and seem to
be enjoying yourself."

So far I have resisted the inclination to smile.  The fact is that
when I cast aside my usual habiliments and take upon me the
personality of another I like to do the thing thoroughly--to enter
into the spirit of the part.  Now I will put the case before you, and
you shall say whether I am not right.

Here we have, as I conceive the situation, a sprig of the nobility,
Tunbridge Wells.  He is a modest young man, who spends most of his
time at his lovely Kentish seat, flanked by fine old forest
trees--preferring the quiet of the country to the noise and bustle of
London.

One day, however, he ventures up to town, and looking in at his
customary coffee-house is hailed by an acquaintance.  Tunbridge
Wells, I may mention, is beautifully attired in a long blue coat,
white satin waistcoat, fancy breeches, with quaint designs painted on
them, silk stockings, and shoes which are too small for him.

"What are you doing to-night?" says his friend.  "Come down to
Chelsea with me.  There's a grand Venetian _fête_ on, and old George
will be there."

"Right," says Tunbridge Wells.

When they get to the gardens his friend takes him aside.

"I say," he begins anxiously, "I hope you won't mind, but the fact is
that I've promised you shall dance in a minuet to-night.  Old George
particularly wants to see one."

"But I simply couldn't," says Tunbridge Wells, in alarm.  "Can't you
get somebody else?"

"Oh, but you must.  I've got you a jolly partner--the Duchess of
Kirkcudbright (N.B.).  You know the minuet, of course?"

"Well, I've learnt it; but I've very nearly forgotten it again.  And
my shoes are beastly uncomfortable.  Before the King too!  It's a bit
steep, you know."

"Well then, you will.  Good man."

"No, no," cries Tunbridge Wells hastily, and leads his friend aside
under the trees.  "I say," he begins mysteriously, "don't say
anything, but--well, it's rather awkward ... I may as well tell you
... these--er--these things are a bit tight.  They look all right
like this, you know, but when you bend down--well, I mean I have to
be jolly careful."

"I was just thinking how pretty they were.  A beautiful thing, that,"
he adds, pointing to a crescent moon in blue on Tunbridge Wells' left
knee.

"Don't touch," says Wells in alarm, "it comes off like anything.  I
lost a dragon-fly only yesterday.  Well, you see how it is, old man.
But for them I should have loved it.  Only ... I say, don't be a
fool....  Your servant, Duchess.  I was just saying ... yes, I am
devoted to it....  Yes....  Yes.  Let's see, it _is_ the left foot,
isn't it?  (Confound that idiot!)"

Now then, do you wonder that the poor fellow looks anxious, or that I
feel it my duty as a good actor to look anxious too?

I have promised not to describe the whole minuet to you, but I must
mention one figure in it of which I am particularly fond.  In this
you rejoin your partner after a long absence, and you have once more
her supporting hand to hold you up.  For some hours previously you
have been alone in the wild and undulating open, tripping over
molehills and falling down ha-has; and it is very pleasant
(especially when your shoes fit you too soon) to get back to her and
pour all your troubles into her sympathetic ear.  It's a figure in
which you stand on one foot each for a considerable time, and paw the
air with the others.  You preserve your balance better if you
converse easily and naturally.

"I nearly came a frightful purler just now; did you see?"

"H'sh, not so loud.  Have you found mother yet?  She's here to-day."

"One of my patches fell off.  I hope nobody heard it."

"You've got a different wig to-day.  Why?"

"It's greyer.  I had such a very anxious moment yesterday.  You know
that last bow at the end where you go down and stay under water for
about five minutes?  Well, I really thought--however, they didn't."

"I don't like you in this one.  It doesn't suit you at all."

"So I thought at first.  But if you gaze at it very earnestly for
three hours, and then look up at the ceiling, you----"

"Why, there _is_ mother.  Hold up."

"I fancy we have rather a good action in this figure.  Do you think
she's noticing it?  I hope she knows that we _could_ stand on one leg
without moving the other one at all.  I mean I don't want her to
think----  Hallo, here we are.  Good-bye.  See you again in the next
figure but one."  And the Duchess of Kirkcudbright (N.B.) trips off.

I put in the "N.B." because she is very particular about it; and I
say "trips" because I know the ground.



II. AT A DANCE

"Then you really are coming?" said Queen Elizabeth, as she gave me my
third cup of tea.

"Yes, I really am," I sighed.

"What as?"

"I don't know at all--something with a cold.  I leave it to you,
partner, only don't go a black suit."

"What about Richelieu?"

"I should never be able to pronounce that," I confessed.  "Besides, I
always think that these great scientists--I should say, philos--that
is, of course, that these generals--er, which room is the
encyclopædia in?"

"You might go as one of the kings of England.  Which is your
favourite king?"

"William and Mary.  Now that _would_ be an original costume.  I
should have----"

"Don't be ridiculous.  Why not Henry VIII.?"

"Do you think I should get a lot of partners as Henry VIII.?  Anyhow,
I don't think it's a very becoming figure."

"But you don't wear fancy dress simply because it's becoming."

"Well, that is rather the point to settle.  Are we going to enhance
my natural beauty, or would you like it--er--toned down a little?  Of
course, I _could_ go as the dog-faced man, only----"

"Very well then, if you don't like Henry, what about Edward I.?"

"But why do you want to thrust royalty on me?  I'd much sooner go as
Perkin Warbeck.  I should wear a brown perkin--jerkin."

"Jack is going as Sir Walter Raleigh."

"Then I shall certainly touch him for a cigarette," I said, as I got
up to go.

* * * * * * *

It was a week later that I met Elizabeth in Bond Street.

"Well?" she said, "have you got your things?"

"I haven't," I confessed.

"I forget who you said you were going as?"

"Somebody who had black hair," I said.  "I have been thinking it over
and I have come to the conclusion that I should have knocked them
rather if I had had black hair--instead of curly eyes and blue hair.
Can you think of anybody for me?"

Queen Elizabeth regarded me as sternly as she might have regarded----
Well, I'm not very good at history.

"Do you mean to say," she said at last, "that that is as far as you
have got?  Somebody who had black hair?"

"Hang it," I protested, "it's something to have been measured for the
wig."

"_Have_ you been measured for your wig?"

"Well--er--no--that is to say, not exactly what you might call
measured.  But--well, the fact is I was just going along now, only--I
say, where do I get a wig?"

"You've done nothing," said Elizabeth--"absolutely nothing."

"I say, don't say that," I began nervously; "I've done an awful lot,
really.  I've practically got the costume.  I'm going as Harold the
Boy Earl, or Jessica's Last----  Hallo, there's my bus; I've got a
cold, I mustn't keep it waiting.  Good-bye."  And I fled.

* * * * * * *

"I am going," I said, "as Julius Cæsar.  He was practically bald.
Think how cool that will be."

"Do you mean to say," cried Elizabeth, "that you have altered again?"

"Don't be rough with me or I shall cry.  I've got an awful cold."

"Then you've no business to go as Julius Cæsar."

"I say, now you're trying to unsettle me.  And I was going to-morrow
to order the clothes."

"What!  You haven't----"

"I was really going this afternoon, only--only it's early closing
day.  Besides, I wanted to see if my cold would get better.  Because
if it didn't----  Look here, I'll be frank with you.  I am going as
Charlemagne."

"Oh!"

"Charlemagne in half-mourning, because Pepin the Short had just died.
Something quiet in grey, with a stripe, I thought.  Only
half-mourning because he only got half the throne.  By-the-way I
suppose all these people wore pumps and white kid gloves all right?
Yes, I thought so.  I wonder if Charlemagne really had black hair.
Anyhow, they can't prove he didn't, seeing when he lived.  He
flourished about 770, you know.  As a matter of fact 770 wasn't
actually his most flourishing year, because the Radicals were in
power then, and land went down so.  Now 771--yes.  Or else as Raymond
Blathwayt."

"Anyhow," I added indignantly a minute later, "I swear I'm going
somehow."

* * * * * * *

"Hallo," I said cheerfully, as I ran into her Majesty in Piccadilly,
"I've just been ordering--that is to say, I've been going----I mean
I'm just going to----  Let's see, it's next week, isn't it?"

For a moment Elizabeth was speechless--not at all my idea of the
character.

"Now then," she said at last, "I am going to take you in hand.  Will
you trust yourself entirely to me?"

"To the death, your Majesty.  I'm sickening for something, as it is."

"How tall are you?"

"Oh, more than that," I said quickly.  "Gent's large medium, I am."

"Then, I'll order a costume for you and have it sent round.  There's
no need for you to be anything historical; you might be a butcher."

"Quite--blue is my colour.  In fact, I can do you the best end of the
neck at tenpence, madam, if you'll wait a moment while I sharpen the
knife.  Let's see; you like it cut on the cross, I think?  Bother,
they've forgotten the strop."

"Well, it may not be a butcher," said Elizabeth; "it depends what
they've got."

* * * * * * *

That was a week ago.  This morning I was really ill at last; had
hardly any breakfast; simply couldn't look a poached egg in the yolk.
A day on the sofa in a darkened room and bed at seven o'clock was my
programme.  And then my eye caught a great box of clothes, and I
remembered that the dance was to-night.  I opened the box.  Perhaps
dressed soberly as a black-haired butcher I could look in for an hour
or two ... and----

_Help!_

A yellow waistcoat, pink breeches, and--no, it's not an eider-down,
it's a coat.

_A yellow----  Pink br----_

I am going as Joseph.

I am going as Swan & Edgar.

I am going as the Sick Duke, by Orchardson.

I am going--yes, that's it, I am going back to bed.




AFTER DINNER


I. THE COMPLETE KITCHEN

I wat in the drawing-room after dinner with my knees together and my
hands in my lap, and waited for the game to be explained to me.

"There's a pencil for you," said somebody.

"Thank you very much," I said, and put it carefully away.  Evidently
I had won a forfeit already.  It wasn't a very good pencil though.

"Now, has everybody got pencils?" asked somebody else.  "The game is
called 'Furnishing a Kitchen.'  It's quite easy.  Will somebody think
of a letter?"  She turned to me.  "Perhaps you'd better."

"Certainly," I said, and I immediately thought very hard of N.  These
thought-reading games are called different things, but they are all
the same really, and I don't believe in any of them.

"Well?" said everybody.

"What? ... Yes, I have.  Go on....  Oh, I beg your pardon," I said in
confusion.  I thought you----  N. is the letter."

"N or M?"

I smiled knowingly to myself.

"My godfather and my godmother," I went on cautiously----

"It was N," interrupted somebody.  "Now then, you've got five minutes
in which to write down everything you can beginning with N.  Go."
And they all started to write like anything.

I took my pencil out and began to think.  I know it sounds an easy
game to you now, as you sit at your desk surrounded by dictionaries;
but when you are squeezed on to the edge of a sofa, given a very
blunt pencil and a thin piece of paper, and challenged to write in
five minutes (on your knees) all the words you can think of beginning
with a certain letter--well, it is another matter altogether.  I
thought of no end of things which started with K, or even L; I
thought of "rhinoceros," which is a very long word and starts with R;
but as for----

I looked at my watch and groaned.  One minute gone.

"I _must_ keep calm," I said, and in a bold hand I wrote _Napoleon_.
Then, after a moment's thought, I added _Nitro-glycerine_, and _Nats_.

"This is splendid," I told myself.  "_Notting Hill_, _Nobody_ and
_Noon_.  That makes six."

At six I stuck for two minutes.  I did worse than that in fact; for I
suddenly remembered that gnats were spelt with a G.  However, I
decided to leave them, in case nobody else remembered.  And on the
fourth minute I added _Non-sequitur_.

"Time!" said somebody.

"Just a moment," said everybody.  They wrote down another word or two
(which isn't fair) and then began to add up.  "I've got thirty," said
one.

"Thirty-two."

"Twenty-five."

"Good heavens," I said, "I've only got seven."

There was a shout of laughter.

"Then you'd better begin," said somebody.  "Read them out."

I coughed doubtfully, and began;

"_Napoleon._"

There was another shout of laughter.

"I am afraid we can't allow that."

"Why ever not?" I asked in amazement.

"Well, you'd hardly find him in a kitchen, would you?"

I took out a handkerchief and wiped my brow.  "I don't want to find
him in a kitchen," I said nervously.  "Why should I?  As a matter of
fact, he's dead.  I don't see what the kitchen's got to do with it.
Kitchens begin with a K."

"But the game is called 'Furnishing a Kitchen.'  You have to make a
list of things beginning with N which you would find in a kitchen.
You understood that, didn't you?"

"Y-y-yes," I said.  "Oh y-y-y-yes.  Of course."

"So Napoleon----"

I pulled myself together with a great effort.

"You don't understand," I said with dignity.  "The cook's name was
Napoleon."

"Cooks aren't called Napoleon," said everybody.

"This one was.  Carrie Napoleon.  Her mistress was just as surprised
at first as you were, but Carrie assured her that----"

"No, I'm afraid we can't allow it."

"I'm sorry," I said; "I'm wrong about that.  Her name was Carrie
Smith.  But her young man was a soldier, and she had bought a 'Life
of Napoleon' for a birthday present for him.  It stood on the
dresser--it did, really--waiting for her next Sunday out."

"Oh!  Oh, well, I suppose that is possible.  Go on."

"_Gnats_," I went on nervously and hastily.  "Of course I know
that----"

"Gnats are spelt with a G," they shrieked.

"These weren't.  They had lost the G when they were quite young, and
consequently couldn't bite at all, and cook said that----"

"No, I'm afraid not."

"I'm sorry," I said resignedly.  "I had about forty of them--on the
dresser.  If you won't allow any of them, it pulls me down a lot.
Er--then we have Nitro-glycerine."

There was another howl of derision.

"Not at all," I said haughtily.  "Cook had chapped hands very badly,
and she went to the chemist's one evening for a little glycerine.
The chemist was out, and his assistant--a very nervous young
fellow--gave her nitro-glycerine by mistake.  It stood on the
dresser, it did, really."

"Well," said everybody very reluctantly, "I suppose----"

I went on hastily:

"That's two.  Then _Nobody_.  Of course, you might easily find nobody
in the kitchen.  In fact you would pretty often, I should say.
Three.  The next is _Noon_.  It could be noon in the kitchen as well
as anywhere else.  Don't be narrow-minded about that."

"All right.  Go on."

"_Non-sequitur_," I said doubtfully.

"What on earth----"

"It's a little difficult to explain, but the idea is this.  At most
restaurants you can get a second help of anything for half-price, and
that is technically called a 'follow.'  Now, if they didn't give you
a follow, that would be a _Non-sequitur_....  You do see that, don't
you?"

There was a deadly silence.

"Five," I said cheerfully.  "The last is _Notting Hill_.  I must
confess," I said magnanimously, "that I am a bit doubtful whether you
would actually find Notting Hill in a kitchen."

"You _don't_ say so!"

"Yes.  My feeling is that you would be more likely to find the
kitchen in Notting Hill.  On the other hand, it is just possible
that, as Calais was found engraven on Mary's heart, so, supposing the
cook died----  Oh, very well.  Then it remains at five."

Of course you think that, as I only had five, I came out last.  But
you are wrong.  There is a pleasing rule in this game that, if you
have any word in your list which somebody else has, you cannot count
it.  And as all the others had the obvious things--such as a
nutmeg-grater or a neck of mutton or a nomelette--my five won easily.
And you will note that, if only I had been allowed to count my gnats,
it would have been forty-five.



II. GETTING THE NEEDLE

He was a pale, enthusiastic young man of the name of Simms; and he
held forth to us at great length about his latest hobby.

"Now I'll just show you a little experiment," he wound up; "one that
I have never known to fail.  First of all, I want you to hide a
needle somewhere, while I am out of the room.  You must stick it
where it can be seen--on a chair--or on the floor if you like.  Then
I shall come back and find it."

"Oh, Mr Simms!" we all said.

"Now, which one of you has the strongest will?"

We pushed Jack forward.  Jack is at any rate a big man.

"Very well.  I shall want you to take my hand when I come in, and
look steadily at the needle, concentrate all your thoughts on it.  I,
on the other hand, shall make my mind a perfect blank.  Then your
thoughts will gradually pass into my brain, and I shall feel myself
as it were dragged in the direction of the needle."

"And I shall feel myself, as it were, dragged after you?" said Jack.

"Yes; you mustn't put any strain on my arm at all.  Let me go just
where I like, only will me to go in the right direction.  Now then."

He took out his handkerchief, put it hastily back, and said: "First,
I shall want to borrow a handkerchief or something."

Well, we blindfolded him, and led him out of the room.  Then Muriel
got a needle, which, after some discussion, was stuck into the back
of the Chesterfield.  Simms returned, and took Jack's left hand.

They stood there together, Jack frowning earnestly at the needle, and
Simms swaying uncertainly at the knees.  Suddenly his knees went in
altogether, and he made a little zig-zag dash across the room, as
though he were taking cover.  Jack lumbered after him, instinctively
bending his head too.  They were brought up by the piano, which Simms
struck with great force.  We all laughed, and Jack apologised.

"You told me to let you go where you liked, you know," he said.

"Yes, yes," said Simms rather peevishly, "but you should have willed
me not to hit the piano."

As he spoke he tripped over a small stool, and, flinging out an arm
to save himself, swept two photograph frames off an occasional table.

"By Jove!" said Jack, "that's jolly good.  I saw you were going to do
that, and I willed that the flower vase should be spared.  I'm
getting on."

"I think you had better start from the door again," I suggested.
"Then you can get a clear run."

They took up their original positions.

"You must think hard, please," said Simms again.  "My mind is a
perfect blank, and yet I can feel nothing coming."

Jack made terrible faces at the needle.  Then, without warning, Simms
flopped on to the floor at full length, pulling Jack after him.

"You mustn't mind if I do that," he said, getting up slowly.

"No," said Jack, dusting himself.

"I felt irresistibly compelled to go down," said Simms.

"So did I," said Jack.

"The needle is very often hidden in the floor, you see.  You are sure
you are looking at it?"

They were in a corner with their backs to it; and Jack, after trying
in vain to get it over his right shoulder or his left, bent down and
focussed it between his legs.  This must have connected the current;
for Simms turned right round and marched up to the needle.

"There!" he said triumphantly, taking off the bandage.

We all clapped, while Jack poured himself out a whisky.  Simms turned
to him.

"You have a very strong will indeed," he said, "one of the strongest
I have met.  Now, would one of the ladies like to try?"

"Oh, I'm sure I couldn't," said all the ladies.

"I should like to do it again," said Simms modestly.  "Perhaps you,
sir?"

"All right, I'll try," I said.

When Simms was outside I told them my idea.

"I'll hold the needle in my other hand," I said, "and then I can
always look at it easily, and it will always be in a different place,
which ought to muddle him."

We fetched him in, and he took my left hand....

"No, it's no good," he said at last, "I don't seem to get it.  Let me
try the other hand...."

I had no time to warn him.  He clasped the other hand firmly; and,
from the shriek that followed, it seemed that he got it.  There
ensued the "perfect blank" that he had insisted on all the evening.
Then he pulled off the bandage, and showed a very angry face.

Well, we explained how accidental it was, and begged him to try
again.  He refused rather sulkily.

Suddenly Jack said: "I believe I could do it blindfold.  Miss Muriel,
will you look at the needle and see if you can will me?"

Simms bucked up a bit, and seemed keen on the idea.  So Jack was
blindfolded, the needle hid, and Muriel took his hand.

"Now, is your mind a perfect blank?" said Simms to Jack.

"It always is," said Jack.

"Very well, then.  You ought soon to feel in a dreamy state, as
though you were in another world.  Miss Muriel, _you_ must think only
of the needle."

Jack held her hand tight, and looked most idiotically peaceful.
After three minutes Simms spoke again.

"Well?" he said eagerly.

"I've got the dreamy, other-world state perfectly," said Jack, and
then he gave at the knees just for the look of the thing.

"This is silly," said Muriel, trying to get her hand away.

Jack staggered violently, and gripped her hand again.

"_Please_, Miss Muriel," implored Simms.  "I feel sure he is just
going to do it."

Jack staggered again, sawed the air with his disengaged hand, and
then turned right round and marched for the door, dragging Muriel
behind him.  The door slammed after them....

* * * * * * * *

There is a little trick of sitting on a chair and picking a pin out
of it with the teeth.  I started Simms--who was all eagerness to
follow the pair, and find out the mysterious force that was drawing
them--upon this trick, for Jack is one of my best friends.  When Jack
and Muriel came back from the billiard-room, and announced that they
were engaged, Simms was on his back on the floor with the chair on
the top of him--explaining, for the fourth time, that if the thing
had not overbalanced at the critical moment he would have secured the
object.  There is much to be said for this view.




BACHELOR DAYS



THE BUTTER

"You mustn't think I am afraid of my housekeeper.  Not at all.  I
frequently meet her on the stairs, and give her some such order as "I
think--if you don't mind--I might have breakfast just a _little_
later--er, yes, about eight o'clock, yes, thank you."  Or I ring the
bell and say, "I--I--want-my-boots."  We both recognise that it is
mine to command and hers to obey.  But in the matter of the butter I
have let things slide, until the position is rapidly becoming an
untenable one.  Yet I doubt if a man of imagination and feeling could
have acted otherwise, given the initial error.  However, you shall
hear.

There are two sorts of butter, salt and fresh.  Now, nobody is so
fond of butter as I am; but butter (as I have often told everybody)
isn't butter at all unless it is salt.  The other kind is merely an
inferior vaseline--the sort of thing you put on the axles of
locomotives.  Imagine, then, my disgust, when I took my first
breakfast in these rooms eleven months ago, to find that the
housekeeper had provided me with a large lump of vaseline!

I hate waste in small things.  Take care of the little extravagances,
I say, and the big ones will take care of themselves.  My first
thought on viewing this pat of butter was, "It is difficult, but I
will eat it."  My second, "But I must tell the housekeeper to get
salt butter next time."

An ordinary-minded person would have stopped there.  I went one
further.  My third thought was this: "Housekeepers are forgetful
creatures.  If I tell her now, she will never remember.  Obviously I
had better wait until this pound is just finished and she is about to
get in some more.  Then will be the time to speak."  So I waited; and
it was here that I made my mistake.  For it turned out that it was I
who was the forgetful creature.  And on the fifteenth day I got up to
find another large pound of vaseline on my table.  The next fortnight
went by slowly.  I kept my eye on every day, waiting for the moment
to come when I could say to the housekeeper, "You will be getting me
in some more butter this morning.  Would you get salt, as I don't
much like the other?"  Wednesday came, and there was just enough left
for two days.  I would speak on the morrow.

But, alas! on the morrow there was another new pound waiting.  I had
evidently misjudged the amount.

I forget what happened after that.  I fancy I must have been very
busy, so that the question of butter escaped me altogether.
Sometimes, too, I would go away for a few days and the old butter
would be thrown away and the new butter bought, at a time when I had
no opportunity of defending myself.  However it was, there came a
time when I had been three months in my rooms, and was still eating
fresh butter; contentedly, to all appearances--in the greatest
anguish of soul, as it happened.  And at the end of another month I
said: "Now, then, I really must do something about this."

But what _could_ I do?  After eating fresh butter for four months
without protest I couldn't possibly tell the housekeeper that I
didn't like it, and would she get salt in future.  That would be too
absurd.  Fancy taking four months to discover a little thing like
that!  Nor could I pretend that, though I used to adore fresh butter,
I had now grown tired of it.  I hate instability of character, and I
could not lend myself to any such fickleness.  I put it to you that
either of these courses would have shown deplorable weakness.  No, an
explanation with the housekeeper was by that time impossible; and if
anything was to be done I must do it on my own responsibility.  What
about buying a pound of salt butter myself, and feeding on it in
secret?  True, I should have to get rid of a certain portion of fresh
every day, but...

I don't know if you have ever tried to get rid of a certain portion
of fresh butter every day, when you are living in a flat at the very
top of chambers in London.  Drop it out of the window once or twice,
and it is an accident.  Three times, and it is a coincidence.  Four
times, and the policeman on duty begins to think that there is more
in it (if I may say so) than meets the eye....  But what about the
fire, you will ask.  Ah, yes; but I could foresee a day when there
would be no fire.  One has to look ahead.

Besides, as I said, I hate waste.  As any cook will tell you, the
whole art of housekeeping can be summed up in three words--_Watch the
butter_.

More months passed and more pats of vaseline.  Every day made an
explanation more hopeless.  I had thoughts at one time of an
anonymous letter.  Something in this style:


"MADAM,--One who is your friend says beware of vaseline.  All is
discovered.  Fly before it is too late.  What is it makes the sea so
salt?  NaCl.  Sodium Chloride.  THE BLACK HAND"


That would give her the impression, at any rate, that there _were_
two kinds of butter.  Confound it all, by what right did she assume
without asking that I had a preference for fresh?

I have now been in my rooms nearly a year.  Something must be done
soon.  My breakfasts are becoming a farce.  Meals which I used to
enjoy I now face as an ordeal.  Is there to be no hope for me in the
future?

Well, there _is_ a chance?  I shall have to wait until July; but with
something definite in view I am content to wait.

In July I hope to go to Switzerland for a month.  Two days before
returning home I shall write to my housekeeper.  Having announced the
day of my return, and given one or two instructions, I shall refer
briefly to the pleasant holiday which I have been enjoying.  I shall
remark perhaps on the grandeur of the mountains and the smiling
beauty of the valleys, I may mention the area in square miles of the
country....

And I shall dwell upon the habits of the native.

"... They live (I shall write) in extraordinary simplicity, chiefly
upon the products of their farms.  Their butter is the most
delightful I have ever tried.  It is a little salt to the taste, but
after four weeks of it I begin to feel that I shall never be able to
do without salt butter again!  No doubt, as made in London it would
be different from this, but I really think I must give it a trial.
So when you are ordering the things I mentioned for me, will you ask
for salt butter...."

And if that fails there remains only the one consolation.  In three
years my lease is up.  I shall take a new flat somewhere, and on the
very first day I shall have a word with the new housekeeper.

"By the way," I shall say, "about the butter...."




THE WASHING

Of course, it is quite possible to marry for love, but I suspect that
a good many bachelors marry so that they may not have to bother about
the washing any more.  That, anyhow, will be one of the reasons with
me.  "I offer you," I shall say, "my hand and heart--and the washing;
and, oh, _do_ see that six tablecloths and my footer shorts don't get
sent _every_ week."

We affect Hampstead for some reason.  Every week a number of shirts
and things goes all the way out to Hampstead and back.  I once sent a
Panama to Paris to be cleaned, and for quite a year afterwards I used
to lead the conversation round to travel, and then come out with,
"Ah, I well remember when my Panama was in Paris...."  So now, when I
am asked at a dance, "Do you know Hampstead at all?"  I reply, "Well,
I only know it slightly myself; but my collars spend about half the
year there.  They are in with all the best people."

I can believe that I am not popular in Hampstead, for I give my
laundress a lot of trouble.  Take a little thing like handkerchiefs.
My rooms, as I have mentioned, are at the very top of the building,
and there is no lift.  Usually I wait till I am just out into the
street before I discover that I have forgotten my handkerchief.  It
is quite impossible to climb all the stairs again, so I go and buy
one for the day.  This happens about three times a week.  The result
is that nearly all my handkerchiefs are single ones--there are no
litters of twelve, no twins even, or triplets.  Now when you have a
lot of strangers in a drawer like this, with no family ties (or
anything) to keep them together, what wonder if they gradually drift
away from each other?

My laundress does her best for them.  She works a sort of birthmark
in red cotton in the corner of each, so that she shall know them
again.  When I saw it first I was frightened.  It looked like the
password of some secret society.

"Are there many aliens in Hampstead?" I asked the housekeeper.

"I don't know, sir."

"Well, look here, what I found on my handkerchief.  That's a secret
signal of some sort, you know, that's what it is.  I shall get mixed
up in some kind of anarchist row before I know where I am.  Will you
arrange about getting my clothes washed somewhere else, please?"

"That's because you haven't got your name on it.  She must mark them
somehow."

"Then, why doesn't she mark them with my name?  So much simpler."

"It isn't her business to mark your clothes," said the housekeeper.

That, I suppose, is true; but it seems to me that she is giving us
both a lot of unnecessary trouble.  Every week I pick out this
decorative design with a penknife, and every week she works it in
again.  When you consider the time and the red cotton wasted it
becomes clear that a sixpenny bottle of marking ink and a quill pen
would be cheaper to her in the long run.

But she has a weakness for red cotton.  The holes in the
handkerchiefs she works round with it--I never quite understand why.
To call my attention to them, perhaps, and to prevent me from falling
through.  Or else to say, "_You_ did this.  I only washed up to the
red, so it can't be _my_ fault."

If I were married and had a house of my own, there would be no man
below; consequently he wouldn't wear the absurd collars he does.  I
get about two of them a week (so even red cotton is not infallible);
and if they were the right size and a decent shape I shouldn't
grumble so much.  But I do object to my collars mixing in town with
these extraordinary things of his.  At Hampstead, it may be, they
have to meet on terms of equality, more or less; force of
circumstances throws them together a good deal.  But in town no
collar of mine could be expected to keep up the acquaintance.  "You
knew me in the bath," I can imagine one of his monstrosities saying;
and, "When I am in the bath I shall know you again," would be the
dignified reply of my "16-Golf."

Collars trouble me a good deal one way or another.  Whenever I buy a
new dozen, all the others seem suddenly to have become old-fashioned
in shape, and of the wrong size.  Nothing will induce me to wear one
of them again.  They get put away in boxes.  Covered with dust, they
lie forgotten.

Forgotten, did I say?  No.  The housekeeper finds them and sends them
to the wash.  About a month later she finds them again.  She is
always finding clothes which have been discarded for ever, and
sending them to the wash.

The mistake is, that we have not yet come to an agreement as to what
really _is_ to go to the wash, and what isn't.  There is a tacit
understanding that everything on the floor on Monday morning is
intended for Hampstead.  The floor is the linen-basket.  It seemed a
good idea at the time, but it has its faults.  Things gets on to the
floor somehow, which were never meant for the north-west--blankets,
and parts of a tweed suit, and sofa cushions.  Things have a
mysterious way of dropping.  Half-a-dozen pairs of white flannel
trousers dropped from a shelf one December.  A pair of footer shorts
used to go every week--a pair which I would carefully put down to
take the bath water when I had finished with it.  I wonder what those
shorts thought they were doing.  Probably they quite fancied
themselves at football, and boasted about the goals they shot to
companions whom they met at Hampstead.

"You're _always_ here!" a pair of local wanderers would say.

"My dear man, I play so hard, I don't care how dirty I get."

The irony of it!

But, worst of all, the laundry-book.  Every week the housekeeper says
to me, "Would you pay your book now, as it's been owing for a month?"
And every week I pay.  That sounds absurd, but I swear it's true.  Or
else the weeks go very quickly.

And such amounts!  Great ninepences for a counterpane or a tablecloth
or a white tie.  Immense numbers of handkerchiefs, counting
(apparently) twelve as thirteen.  Quaint hieroglyphics, which don't
mean anything but seem to get added into the price.  And always that
little postscript, "As this has been owing for a month, we must
request...."

And yet they want to put a tax on bachelors!



TAKING STOCK

Beatrice has been spring-cleaning me to-day, or rather my clothes.  I
said, wasn't it rather early for it, as none of the birds were
singing properly yet, and she had much better wait till next year;
but no, she _would_ do it _now_.  Beatrice is my sister-in-law, and
she said----  Well, I forget what she did say, but she took a whole
bundle of things away with her in a cab; and I _know_ John will be
wearing that purple shirt of mine to-morrow.  As a matter of fact, it
was a perfectly new one, and I was only waiting till Lent was over.

Beatrice said the things were all lying about anyhow, and how I ever
found anything to put on she didn't know; but I could have told her
that they were all arranged on a symmetrical plan of my own.
Beatrice doesn't understand the symmetry of a bachelor's mind.  I
like a collar in each drawer, and then, whatever drawer you open,
there's a collar ready for you.  Beatrice puts them all in one
drawer, and then if you're in a hurry, and open the wrong drawer by
mistake, you probably go up to the office in two waistcoats and no
collar at all.  That would be very awkward.

Beatrice actually wanted a braces drawer (if she hadn't married John
I should never let her talk to me about braces), but I explained that
I had only one pair, and was wearing those, so that it would be
absurd.  I expect she wanted me to think that John had two pairs.
All I can say, is, that, if he has, he ought to be above taking my
best shirt....

I don't think the waistcoat drawer will be a success.  There are
twenty-three of them, and some of them don't blend at all well.
Twenty-three in one drawer--you know there are bound to be disputes.
I see _William_ has got to the top already.  Ah! he was a fine
fellow, the first I ever had.  I don't quite know how to describe
him, but in colour he was emerald green, with bits of red silk
peeping through.  Sort of open-work, you know, only where you would
expect to see me there was more of _William_.  I wore him at
Beatrice's wedding.  He _would_ come.  Only he wouldn't let me into
the vestry.  I wanted to sign my name; all the others were.  I have
never worn him since that day, but Beatrice has fished him out, and
now he lies on the very top of the drawer.

Of course it's awfully good of Beatrice to take so much trouble about
my clothes, and I'm extremely grateful, and after all she did marry
my brother John; but I think sometimes she----  Well, here's a case.
You know, when you have twenty-three waistcoats you perhaps run a bit
short of--of other things.  So, naturally, the few you _have_ got
left, you----  Well, Beatrice took them all away, and said that as I
couldn't possibly wear them again she'd cut them up for house-cloths.
And really--half-way between winter and summer is a very awkward time
for restocking.  But I suppose it is going to be warmer now?

_House-cloths_!  I bet John has a go at them first.

Beatrice found what they call in the profession a "morning-coat and
vest" under the bed, and said that she would take it away and sell it
for me.  I like the way she "finds" things which I have been keeping
for years under the bed.  It is absurd to talk about "finding"
anything in a small flat, because, of course, it's there all the
time: but Beatrice thought that I ought to be grateful to her for the
discovery, so I pretended I was.  She said she would get at least
half-a-crown for it; but I said I would rather have the coat.
However, it turned out that I wasn't even to have had the
half-crown....

I used to have thirty pairs of old white gloves in a drawer.  I would
take them out sometimes, and stroke them affectionately, and say,
"Ah, yes, those were the ones I wore at that absolutely ripping dance
when I first met Cynthia, and we had supper together.  You can see
where I spilt the ice pudding."  Or--"This was that Hunt Ball, when I
knew nobody and danced with Hildegarde all the time.  She wore black;
just look at them now."  Well, Beatrice had _that_ drawer out pretty
quick.  And now they are on their way to Perth or Paris, or wherever
it is; except Hildegarde's pair, which will just do for the girl when
she cleans the grates.  I expect she really will get them you know;
because John doesn't dance.

You know, you mustn't make too much fun of Beatrice; she has ripping
ideas sometimes.  She filled a "summer-trunk" for me--a trunk full of
all the clothes I am going to want in the summer.  She started with a
tennis-racquet (which, strictly speaking, isn't clothes at all), and
went on with some of the jolliest light waistcoats you ever saw; it
made me quite hot to look at them.  Well, now, that's really a good
idea so far as it goes.  But what will happen when the summer does
come?  Why, we shall have to go through the whole business all over
again.  And who'll arrange the winter-trunk?  Beatrice.  And who'll
get the pink pyjamas and the green socks that there's really no room
for, dear?  Why, John.

Yet I am sorry for John.  He was once as I am.  What a life is his
now.  Beatrice is a dear, and I will allow no one to say a word
against her, but she doesn't understand that trousers must be folded,
not hung; that a collar which has once been a collar can never be
opened out and turned into a cuff (supposing one wore cuffs); and
that a school eleven blazer, even if it happens to be pink, must not
be cut down into a dressing-jacket for the little one.  Poor John!
Yes, I am glad now that he has that shirt of mine.  It is perhaps a
_little_ too bright for his complexion, perhaps he has not _quite_
the air to carry it off; but I am glad that it is his.  Now I think
of it I have a tie and a pair of socks that would go well with it;
and even _William_--can I part with _William_?--yes, he shall have
_William_.  Oh, I see that I must be kind to John.

Dear Beatrice!  I wonder when I shall have everything straight again.




MEDES AND PERSIANS

I have already said that I am not afraid of my housekeeper, so there
is no need for me to say it again.  There are other motives than fear
which prevent a man from arguing with housekeepers; dislike of
conversation with his intellectual inferiors may be one, the sporting
instinct is certainly another.  If one is to play "Medes and
Persians" properly, one must be a sportsman about it.  Of course, I
could say right out to her "Do this," and she might do it.  Or she
could say right out to me, "Do that," and I would reply, "Don't be
absurd."  But that wouldn't be the game.

As I play it, a "Mede" is a law which _she_ lays down, and to which
(after many a struggle) in the end I submit; a "Persian" is a law
which _I_ lay down, and to which ... after many a struggle ... in the
end ... (when it is too late)....  Well, there are many Medes, but so
far I have only scored one Persian of note.

The first Mede was established last winter.  For many weeks I had
opened my bedroom door of a morning to find a small jug of cold water
on the mat outside.  The thing puzzled me.  What do I want with a
small jug of cold water, I asked myself, when I have quite enough in
the bath as it is?  Various happy thoughts occurred to me--as that it
was lucky, that it collected the germs, or (who knows?) indicated a
wife with five thousand a year--but it was a month before the real
solution flashed across my mind.  "Perhaps," I said, "it was hot
once.  But," I added, "it must have been a long time ago."

The discovery upset me a good deal.  In the first place, it is
annoying suddenly to have all one's hopes of a rich wife and
protection from disease dashed to the ground; in the second, I object
to anybody but a relation interfering with my moral character.  Here
was a comparative stranger trying to instil the habit of early rising
into me by leaving shaving-water outside the door at three A.M.  Was
this a thing to be taken lying down?

Decidedly.  So I stayed in bed and ignored the water-jug; save that
each morning, as I left my rooms, I gave it a parting sneer.  It was
gone by the evening, but turned up again all right next day.  After a
month I began to get angry.  My housekeeper was defying me; very
well, we would see who could last the longer.

But after two months it was a Mede.  Yet I have this triumph over
her.  That though I take the water in I ... pour it into the bath and
slip back into bed again.  I don't think she knows that.

Since then there have been many Medes.  Little ones as to the
position of the chairs; bigger ones as to the number of blankets on
the bed.  You mustn't think, though, that I always submit so easily.
Sometimes I am firm.  In the matter of "Africa Joe" I have been very
firm.  Here, I know, I have right on my side.

A year ago I was presented with a model of an Irish jolting car (with
horse and driver complete), which had been cut out of some sort of
black wood.  The thing used to stand over my fireplace.  Later on I
acquired, at different times, a grey hippopotamus (in china) and a
black elephant.  These I harnessed on in front of the horse; and the
whole affair made a very pretty scene, which was known to my friends
as "Sunday in the Forest: Africa Joe drives his Family to Church."
Besides all these I had yet another animal--a green frog climbing a
cardboard ladder.  I leant this against the clock.  One had the
illusion that the frog was climbing up in order to look at the
works--which was particularly pleasing because the clock didn't go.

Very well.  You have the two scenes on the same mantelboard.  One,
the frog as Bond Street watchmaker and jeweller, and the other (such
is Empire), Africa Joe in the heart of the forest.  And what does the
housekeeper do?  If you will believe me, she takes the frog down from
the clock and props him up behind the car, just as though he were
getting on to it in order to go to church with the others!

Now I do put it to you that this is simply spoiling the picture
altogether.  Here we have a pleasant domestic episode, such as must
occur frequently in the African forests.  Black Joe harnesses his
horse, elephant, hippopotamus, or what not, and drives his family to
the eleven o'clock service.  And into this scene of rural simplicity
a mere housekeeper elbows her way with irrevelant frogs and ladders!

It is a mystery to me that she cannot see how absurd her contribution
is.  To begin with, the family is in black (save the hippopotamus,
who is in a quiet grey), so is it likely that they would tolerate the
presence of a garish green-and-yellow stranger?  (More than likely
Joe is a churchwarden, and has not only himself to think of.)  Then,
again, consider the title of the scene: "Africa Joe _drives_ his
Family"--not "Africa Joe about to drive."  The horse is trotting, the
elephant has one leg uplifted, and even the hippopotamus is not in a
position of rest.  How then could the frog put a ladder up against a
moving cart, and climb in?  No; here anyhow was a Mede that must be
resisted at all costs.  On the question of Africa Joe I would not be
dictated to.

But, after re-emphasising my position daily for three weeks, I saw
that there was only one thing to do.  The frog must be sacrificed to
the idea of Empire.  So I burnt him.

But it is time I mentioned my one Persian.  It was this way.  In the
winter I used always to dry myself after the bath in front of my
sitting-room fire.  Now, I know all about refraction, and the
difficulty of seeing into a room from outside, and so forth, but this
particular room is unusually light, having six large windows along
one of its sides.  I thought it proper, therefore, to draw down the
three end blinds by the fireplace; more especially as the building
directly opposite belonged to the Public House Reform Association.
In the fierce light that beats from reform associations one cannot be
too careful.

Little things like blinds easily escape the memory, and it was
obvious that it would be much pleasanter if the housekeeper could be
trained always to leave the end three down.  The training followed
its usual course.

Every morning I found the blinds up and every morning I drew them
down and left them there.  After a month it seemed impossible that I
could ever establish my Persian.  But then she forgot somehow; and
one day I woke up to find the three blinds down.

By a real stroke of genius I drew them up as soon as my dressing was
over.  Next morning they were down again.  I bathed, dried, dressed
and threw them up.  She thought it was a Mede, and pulled them down.

But it was a Persian, and, as I pulled them up, I knew that I had
scored.

Yet, after all, I am not so sure.  For it is now the summer, and I
have no fire, and I do not want the blinds left down.  And when I
pull them up every morning I really want to find them up next
morning.  But I find them down.  So perhaps it really is a Mede.  To
tell the truth, the distinction between the two is not so clear as it
ought to be.  I must try to come to some arrangement with the
housekeeper about it.




THE CUPBOARD

It was the landlord who first called my attention to the cupboard; I
should never have noticed it myself.

"A very useful cupboard you see there," he said, "I should include
that in the fixtures."

"Indeed," said I, not at all surprised; for the idea of his taking
away the cupboard had not occurred to me.

"You won't find many rooms in London with a cupboard like that."

"I suppose not," I said.  "Well, I'll let you have my decision in a
few days.  The rent with the cupboard, you say, is----"  And I named
the price.

"Yes, with the cupboard."

So that settled the cupboard question.

Settled it so far as it concerned him.  For me it was only the
beginning.  In the year that followed my eyes were opened, so that I
learned at last to put the right value on a cupboard.  I appreciate
now the power of the mind which conceived this thing, the nobility of
the great heart which included it among the fixtures.  And I am not
ungrateful.

You may tell a newly married man by the way he talks of his garden.
The pretence is that he grows things there--verbenas and
hymantifilums and cinerarias, anything which sounds; but of course
one knows that what he really uses it for is to bury in it things
which he doesn't want.  Some day I shall have a garden of my own in
which to conduct funerals with the best of them; until that day I
content myself with my cupboard.

It is marvellous how things lie about and accumulate.  Until they are
safely in the cupboard we are never quite at ease; they have so much
to say outside, and they put themselves just where you want to step,
and sometimes they fall on you.  Yet even when I have them in the
cupboard I am not without moments of regret.  For later on I have to
open it to introduce companions, and then the sight of some old
friend saddens me with the thought of what might have been.  "Oh, and
I did mean to hang you up over the writing-desk," I say remorsefully.

I am thinking now of a certain picture--a large portrait of my old
headmaster.  It lay in a corner for months, waiting to be framed,
getting more dingy and dirty every day.  For the first few weeks I
said to myself, "I must clean that before I send it to the shop.  A
piece of bread will do it."  Later, "It's extraordinary how clever
these picture people are.  You'd think it was hopeless now, but I've
no doubt, when I take it round to-morrow----"

A month after that somebody trod on it....

Now, then, I ask you--what could I do with it but put it in the
cupboard?  You cannot give a large photograph of a headmaster, bent
across the waistcoat, to a housekeeper, and tell her that you have
finished with it.  Nor would a dustman make it his business to
collect pedagogues along with the usual cabbage stalks.  A married
man would have buried it under the begonia; but having no garden....

That is my difficulty.  For a bachelor in chambers who cannot bury,
there should be some other consuming element than fire.  In the
winter I might possibly have burnt it is small quantities--Monday the
head, Tuesday the watch-chain--but in the summer what does one do
with it?  And what does one do with the thousands of other things
which have had their day--the old magazines, letters, papers,
collars, chair legs, broken cups?  You may say that, with the
co-operation of my housekeeper, a firmer line could be adopted
towards some of them.  Perhaps so; but, alas! she is a willing
accessory to my weakness.  I fancy that once, a long time ago, she
must have thrown away a priceless MS. in an old waistcoat; now she
takes no risks with either.  In principle it is a virtue; in practice
I think I would chance it.

It is a big cupboard; you wouldn't find many rooms in London with a
cupboard like that; and it is included in the fixtures.  Yet in the
ordinary way, I suppose, I could not go on putting things in for
ever.  One day, however, I discovered that a family of mice had heard
of it too.  At first I was horrified.  Then I saw that it was all for
the best; they might help me to get rid of things.  In a week they
had eaten three pages of a nautical almanac; interesting pages which
would be of real help to a married man at sea who wished to find the
latitude by means of two fixed stars, but which, to a bachelor on the
fourth floor, were valueless.

The housekeeper missed the point.  She went so far as to buy me an
extremely patent mousetrap.  It was a silly trap, because none of the
mice knew how to work it, although I baited it once with a cold
poached egg.  It is not for us to say what our humbler brethren
should like and dislike; we can only discover by trial and error.  It
occurred to me that, if they _did_ like cold poached eggs, I should
be able to keep on good terms with them, for I generally had one over
of a morning.  However, it turned out that they preferred a vegetable
diet--almanacs and such....

The cupboard is nearly full.  I don't usually open it to visitors,
but perhaps you would care to look inside for a moment?

That was once a top-hat.  What do you do with your old top-hats?  Ah,
yes, but then I only have a housekeeper here at present....  That is
a really good pair of boots, only it's too small....  All that paper
over there?  Manuscript....  Well, you see it _might_ be valuable one
day....

Broken batting glove.  Brown paper--I always keep brown paper, it's
useful if you're sending off a parcel.  _Daily Mail_ war map.
Paint-pot--doesn't belong to me really, but it was left behind, and I
got tired of kicking it over.  Old letters--all the same handwriting,
bills probably....

Ah, no, they are not bills, you mustn't look at those.  (I didn't
know they were there--I swear I didn't.  I thought I had burnt them.)
Of course I see now that she was quite right....  Yes, that was the
very sweet one where she ... well, I knew even then that ... I mean
I'm not complaining at all, we had a very jolly time....

Still, if it _had_ been a little different--if that last letter....
Well, I might by now have had a garden of my own in which to have
buried all this rubbish.




THE POST BAG

The other day I received a letter from some very old friends of mine
who live in Queen Victoria Street.


_Memo from Messrs Robinson, Cigar Shippers_


MY DEAR SIR,--We have been very anxious at not having heard from you
for nearly a year.  We trust that you are in good health and that no
illness or bereavement has kept you from writing to us.  As you know,
it is our one ambition to satisfy you in the matter of cigars, and
your long silence on the subject has naturally made us apprehensive.
Until we hear from you, however, we shall refuse to believe that the
last lot you had from us were fatal.

Write to us frankly on the subject.  How did you like the cigars we
sent you last Christmas?  Were they brown enough?  Did they smoke to
a finish strongly?  One third shipper, who went to Havana especially
to select this lot for you, writes us that in this respect they were
fit for an ambassador or (we may add) an actor manager.  What is it,
then, that you are keeping back from us?  Perhaps you could not light
them?  If this was the case you should have written to us before, and
we would either have sent you others of a more porous quality or
forwarded you our special gimlet, with which you could have brought
about the necessary draught.  Lay bare your heart to us about these
cigars.  Do you mind the green spots?

A connoisseur like yourself will, of course, understand that, though
we guarantee that all the cigars sent out by us _can_ be smoked, yet
the quality of the cigar must necessarily vary with the price.  This
being so, perhaps you would care to try a slightly higher-priced
cigar this time.  We have referred to our books and we see that last
year we had the pleasure of sending you a box of our famous _Flor di
Cabajo_ at 8s. 6d. the hundred.  A nicer-coloured cigar is the
_Blanco Capello_ at 9s. 6d.; but we are hoping this Christmas that
you will see your way to giving our celebrated _Pompadoros_, at £5
the hundred, a trial.  They have all the features of the _Cabajo_
which you approved, together with a breadth and charm of flavour of
their own.  May we send you a box of these?

Our other special lines are:

The _I am Coming_--a spirited young cigar at 7s. 6d. the hundred, of
which we enclose a sample.

The _Mañana_--prompt and impressive--10s. the hundred.  (_Note.--This
cigar has a band._)

The _There and Back_--a good persevering cigar.  Only 10s. 6d.  Never
comes undone.

However we are quite sure that none of these will appeal to such a
fastidious palate as yours must be by now, and that we may
confidently rely on your order for a box of _Pompadoros_.

We may say that if you should unfortunately have completely lost your
taste for cigars we shall be happy to send a box to any friend of
yours.  Nothing could make a more acceptable present, and nothing
would endear your friend or his relatives to you so completely.

Now please write to us and tell us what you feel about it.  We desire
to make friends of our customers; we do not wish our business to be a
mere commercial undertaking.  Talk to us as freely as you would to
your old college chum or fellow-clubman.  We insist on being of
service to you.  Hoping to hear from you within a day or two, we are,
etc.,

ROBINSON & Co.


I replied at once:


_Memo from Me_

DEAR OLD FRIEND,--A thousand thanks for your sympathetic letter, and
the book with the pictures.  Upon my word, I don't know which of the
cigars I like best; they all look so jolly.  Are they photographs or
water-colours?  I mean, are they really as brown as that?  I like the
tall, well set-up one on page 7.  I see you say that it smokes
strongly to a finish.  That is all very well, Oswald, but what I want
to know is, Does it hang the beginning at all?  Some of these cigars
with a strong finish are very slow forward, you know.

Many thanks for the sample.  Bless you, Rupert, I didn't mind the
green spots.  What do they mean?  That the cigar isn't quite ripe
yet, I suppose.  But I think you overdo the light brown spots.  Or
are they lucky, like those little strangers in the tea?

Yes, I think I must have some of your _Pompadoros_.  Send a box at
Christmas to Mr Smithson, of 199 Cornhill, with our love--yours and
mine and the third shipper's.  I'll pay.  Not at all, Percy, it's a
pleasure.  He sent me some last Christmas; as it happened, I left 'em
in the train before I had smoked one; but that wasn't his fault, was
it?  I'll get some for myself later on, if I may.  You won't mind
waiting?

Dear old soul, you make a mistake when you say I had some cigars from
you last year.  I assure you I've never heard of your name till
to-day.  That was why I didn't write on your birthday.  You'll
forgive me, won't you?

Now it is your turn to write.  Tell me all about yourself, and your
children, and the third shipper, and the light brown spots and
everything.  Good-bye!  Your very loving college chum.


The correspondence concluded thus:


DEAR SIR,--We have received your esteemed order, which shall be
promptly executed.  Though the _Pompadoros_ will not be despatched to
your friend till Christmas, they are now being selected and will be
put aside to cool.

We have referred again to our books and find that a box of our
celebrated young _Cabajos_ was indeed despatched to your address last
year, on the advice of Mr Smithson, of 199 Cornhill.  This was why we
were so anxious at your long silence.  We are, etc.,

ROBINSON & Co.


DEAR OLD SPORT,--I am afraid you misunderstood my last letter.  The
_Pompadoros_ are for myself; it was a hundred _I am Comings_ which I
wanted for my friend Mr Smithson.  I must tell you a funny thing
about him; as a friend of both of us you will be interested.  He
collects cigar bands!  I have no use for them myself; so, if it isn't
troubling you, would you send the _Pompadoro_ bands to _him_, as the
_I am Comings_ haven't any of their own?  You might put them on the
cigars to save packing.  Ever your devoted fellow-clubman.




GOING OUT

Alone, I can get through an At Home with a certain amount of credit.
No doubt, I make mistakes; no doubt people look at me and say: "Who
is that person sitting all by himself in the corner, and keeping on
eating muffins?" but at any rate I can make the function a tolerable
one.  When, however, I flutter in under the wing of my sister-in-law,
with my hair nicely brushed and my tie pulled straight (she having
held a review on the doorstep), then it is another matter altogether.
It is then that I feel how necessary it is to say the right thing.
Beatrice has pretty ears, but they are long-distance ones.  We
drifted apart immediately but I was sure she was listening.

I found myself introduced to a tall, athletic-looking girl.

"There's a great crowd, isn't there?" I said.  "Can I find you some
tea, or anything?"

"Oh, please," she said, with a smile.

I noted the smile, and thanked heaven that I had read my Lady Grove.
In the ordinary way I say to strangers: "Will you take a dish of tea
with me?" but just in time Lady Grove had warned me that this was
wrong.  Left to myself I hit upon the word "find."  "Can I find you
some tea?"  It gives the idea of pursuit.  And the "or anything"
rounds it off well--as much as to say, "If I _should_ happen to come
back with a sardine on toast, don't blame _me_."

I found some tea after a long struggle, but by that time I had lost
the athlete.  It was a pity, because I was going to have talked to
her about Surrey's victory over Kent at ladies' hockey.  I don't know
anything about hockey, but it's obvious that Surrey must play Kent
some time, and it would be an even chance that Surrey would win.  The
good conversationalist takes risks cheerfully.

Well, the international having disappeared, I was going to drink the
tea myself, when I caught Beatrice's eye on me.

"Will you have some tea?" I said to my neighbour.

"I think a little coffee, thank you."

"Certainly."

I pressed the tea into the hand of a retired colonel, and hurried
off.  Now that shows you.  Alone, I should have quoted _The Lancet_
on coffee microbes, and insisted on her having my cup of tea.  This
would have led us easily and naturally to a conversation on drinks
and modern journalism.  We should have become friends.  I should have
had an invitation from her mother to lunch; and I should have smoked
two of her father's best cigars.

As it was I said "Certainly," fetched the coffee, coughed, and
observed that there was rather a crowd.  She said "Yes" and turned
away to somebody else.  Two good cigars thrown away because of
Beatrice!

I was slowly recovering from my loss when Beatrice herself came up to
say that she wanted to introduce me to a very nice girl called Jane
something.  In the ordinary way, very nice girls aren't called Jane
anything, so here evidently was something exceptional.  I buttoned my
coat boldly, and followed her, unbuttoning it nervously on the way.

"Here he is," she said, and left us.

This is what they call introducing.

"How do you do?" I started.

"I've heard such a lot about you," began Jane brightly.

I never know what to say to that.  There must be a right answer, if
only Lady Grove would tell us.  As it was I said "Thank you."

That felt wrong, so I added, "So have I."

"About you," I explained hurriedly.  To myself I said, "You know
you're not really carrying this off well.  It's idle to pretend that
you are."

"_What_ have you heard, I wonder?" beamed Jane.

Only that her name was Jane something.

"Ah!" I said.

"Oh, you _must_ tell me!"

"I mean, I've heard friends of yours mention your name."

"Oh," she said disappointedly, "I thought you meant----"

"But, of course, everybody has heard of Jane--h'r'r'm--of Miss--er,
um--I think my sister-in-law--yes, thank you, we have a train to
catch, oh, must you really go?--er--good-bye."

I staggered away in pursuit of Beatrice.  She dragged me up to an
American girl, as I judged her.

"Here he is," she said, and passed on.

"So glad to make your acquaintance," said the American.

There _is_ no answer to that, I know.  I ignored it altogether, and
said:

"Have you seen the Budget?"

"No.  What's that?"

"Oh, you must see that."

"I will.  We'll go to-morrow.  Where is it?"

I don't think Americans see as much of Addison Road as they ought to.
I gave the usual guide-book directions for getting there, and was
just beginning to be interested when I saw Beatrice's inquiring look.
"Are you behaving nicely?" it said.  I passed on hastily.

I was very lonely for a while after that.  Three times I got a plate
of cucumber sandwiches safely into a corner, and three times a
sisterly eye dragged us out again.  After the third failure I saw
that it was hopeless, so I wandered about and tried to decide which
was the ugliest hat in the room.  A man is the only possible judge in
a competition of that sort.  A woman lets herself be prejudiced by
such facts as that it is so fashionable, or that she saw one just
like it in Bond Street, my dear, at five guineas.

I had narrowed the competitors down to five, two of which were, on
form, certain for a place, when I turned round and saw, in a corner
behind me--

(I don't know if you will believe me)--

A man with a plate of cucumber sandwiches!

I rubbed my eyes in amazement.  A man ... at an At Home ... sitting
down and eating cucum----  Why, where was his sister-in-law?

There was only one thing to be done.  The favourite in my competition
(green, pink hoops) was disengaged for the moment.  I went up to the
man, took him by the arm, and dragged him away from his corner.  He
still held the plate in his hand, and I helped myself to a sandwich.
"Must introduce you," I whispered in his ear.  "Famous prize-winner."
We pushed our way up to the lady.

"Here he is," I said.

And I looked round triumphantly for Beatrice.




THE SIDESMAN

(For the Third Day running)

  For what seemed weeks, but was the last two days,
  I'd pottered up and down that blessed baize--
  Sorting out aunts in browns and aunts in greys.

  For what seemed always, but was only twice
  (Looking, if I may say so, rather nice),
  I'd lent a hand with hymn-sheets and with rice.

  Once more the dear old bells ring out; once more
  I linger, pink but anxious, at the door--
  This is the third time.  Here she comes!  Oh, lor'!

  * * * * * * *

  Something on these occasions goes and thrills
  My fancy waistcoat at the first "I will's";
  It can't be hopeless love--it must be chills.

  Something--a sinking feeling--round the heart
  Clutches me closely from the very start,
  And tells me I am fairly in the cart.

  Something....  And yet the fiercest unconcern
  So masks me that the vergers never learn
  How underneath my chest I yearn and yearn.

  * * * * * * *

  "_Wilt thou?_"  And (there you are!) profoundly stirred,
  A gleam of hope strikes through me--wild, absurd ...
  "No luck!" I sigh.  "He's on it like a bird."

  "_I, Edward John_"--and lonely at the back
  I wish my name were Edward; I could hack
  Myself that I was never christened Jack.

  "_I, Amabel_ (O Amabel!) _take thee_"--
  I groan, and give profoundly at the knee:
  "There, but for someone else," I say, "goes Me."

  * * * * * * *

  Fair friends o' mine, what is it tries to shove
  My heart into my watch-chain, as above?
  It can't be hopeless chills, it must be love.

  Yet not for Amabel.  No weight of care
  Clogs me as I pursue that happy pair
  Into the vestry and admire them there;

  Save this: I take the clergyman aside--
  "Tell me," I whisper--"you're the third I've tried--
  Do I, or do I not, embrace the bride?"




AN AWKWARD CASE

This is one of those really difficult cases (being the seventh of the
quarter) where the editor of _The Perfect Lady_ simply has to ask his
readers what _A._ should have done.  The sort of reply that will be
given is; "_A._ should have carried it off easily."  Remarks like
that are unhesitatingly included among the "_Answers adjudged
idiotic._"

The thing happened in the train, while I was returning to town after
a couple of nights in the country.  The scene--an empty carriage,
myself in one corner.  On the seat opposite lay my dressing-case.  I
had unlocked it in order to take out a book, and was deep in this
when we stopped at a wayside station.  The opening of the door woke
me suddenly; somebody was daring to get into my compartment.  Luckily
one only--a girl.

Women always wish to travel with their backs to the engine; in the
event of an accident you don't have so far to go.  She sat down next
to my bag.  Naturally I jumped up (full of politeness), seized the
handle, and swung the thing up on to the rack.

That, at least, was the idea.  It was carried out literally, but not
figuratively.  The bag went up beautifully; only--on its way it
opened, and the contents showered down upon the seats, the floor,
and--yes, even upon her....

The contents....

This story shows upon what small accidents great events turn.  If I
had only been going instead of coming back!  A couple of clean
shirts, a few snow-white collars, a pair of sky-blue pyjamas
perfectly creased, socks and handkerchiefs neatly folded--one would
not have minded all these being thrown before a stranger; at least,
not so much.  Going, too, the brushes and things would have been in
their proper compartments; they would have swung up on to the rack.
I feel convinced that, if the thing had happened going, I should have
carried it off all right.  We should have laughed together, we should
have told each other of similar accidents which had happened to
friends, and we should have then drifted into a general conversation
about the weather.  Going ....

But coming back!  It was an early train, and I had packed hurriedly.
The brushes and things had been put in anyhow, and they came out
anyhow.  There was an absurd piece of shaving soap wrapped up in one
of "An Englishman's Letters."  (I always think that things wrapped up
like that look so horrible.)  There was a shaving-brush in a pink
piece of _Globe_ lying on the sky-blue pyjamas (and the pyjamas all
anyhow).  Then the collars.  I do think a dirty collar ... besides I
had screwed them up tightly in order to get them in....  Of course
she wouldn't understand that....

Socks.  Now this is too awful.  I don't know if I can mention this.
Well--well then, they had two wretched sock-suspenders attached to
them.  Odd ones, as I live--black and pink.  You see, I had got up in
a hurry, and...

Handkerchiefs.  They had been shoved into the pumps.  I had been
pressed for space, and...

You know, there were about thirty-nine different things that I wanted
to explain to her.  In novels the hero is always throwing upon the
heroine an expressive glance, full of meaning.  That is what I
wanted.  There is probably, if one only knew it, a shrug, a wave of
the hand, which really does express the fact that you were coming and
not going, and took in _The Times_ yourself, and had packed in a
hurry, and ...

If I could only have handed a Statement to the Press....

And I have yet to mention the unkindest blow of all.  The evening
clothes themselves, the only presentable things, stayed in the bag.
If they had come out too, then I might have done something.  I should
have left them to the last--conspicuous upon the floor.  Then I
should have picked them up slowly, examined them, and nodded at the
braid on the trousers as if to say, "Hang it, that's the sort of man
I am really."  I think, if they had come out too, I could still have
carried the thing off....

What should _A._ do?  Should he say to the girl, "Close your eyes and
count twenty, and see what somebody's brought you," and then, while
she was not looking, push the clothes under the seat?  Should he be
quite calm, and, stretching in front of her, say, "_My_ sock, I
think," or politely, "Perhaps you would care to look at a piece of
_The Daily Mail_?" Should he disown the thing altogether?  "I'm very
sorry.  Let _me_ put them back for you."  That would have been a
master-stroke.

Or should he, to divert attention, pull the alarm, and pay his five
pounds like a man?

But what _did_ _A._ do?

Alas!  He did nothing heroic.  For one moment he stood there; then he
pulled down the bag, fell on his knees, and began throwing the things
in madly.  He picked up the bag, locked it, and put it on the rack.

Then he turned to the girl.  Now he was going to have spoken to her.
An apology, a laugh--yes, even now he might have carried it off.

Only he happened to look up ... and he saw above her head the cord of
his pyjamas dangling over the edge of the rack.




  REVERIE

  Dear Amaryllis,--(may I call you that?
  Seeing I do not know your proper name;
  And if I did, it might be something dull--
  Like Madge).  I offer you my broken heart,
  Knowing that if you do not want the thing
  You will not hesitate to mention it:
  Dear Amaryllis, will you please be mine?

  We met, 'twas at a dance, ten days ago;
  And after sundry smiles and bows from me,
  And other rather weary smiles from you,
  And certain necessary calculations,
  We hit at last upon the second extra,
  And made an assignation for the same.
  "I shall be at this corner here," you said:
  And I "Right O" or words to that effect.
  But when the dance came round we both were tired,
  So sat it out instead beneath a palm
  (Which probably was just as well for you,
  And since I love you, just as well for me).
  We talked, but what about I can't remember--
  Save this: that you were rather keen on golf;
  That I had never been to Scarborough;
  And both of us thought well of Bernard Shaw.

  We talked; but all the time I looked at you,
  And wondered much what inspiration led
  Your nose to tilt at just that perfect angle;
  And wondered how on earth you did your hair;
  And why your eyes were blue, when it was black;
  And why--a hundred other different things.
  Until at last, another dance beginning,
  You left me lonely; whereupon I went
  Back to the supper-room, and filled a glass
  And drank, and lit a cigarette, and sighed,
  And asked the waiter had he been in love,
  And told the waiter, Yes, I _am_ in love,
  And gave him twopence, and went home to bed.

  _Am_ I in love?  Well, no, I hardly think so.
  For one, I'm much too happy as I am;
  For two, I shall forget you by to-morrow;
  For three, I do not care about your friends,
  The men you danced with--bounders, all of them;
  For four and five and six and all the rest,
  I'm fairly sure we shall not meet again.
  Not that I mind.  No, as I said before,
  I'm very much too happy as I am.
  Besides, I shall forget you by to-morrow.

  Then why this letter?  Well, two incidents
  Have led me to it.  Here you have them both.
  First, then, that sitting in my rooms last week,
  Sitting and smoking, thinking--not of you,
  Not altogether, but of many things,
  Politics, football, dinner and tobacco--
  Quite suddenly, this thought occurred to me:
  "By Jove, I wish I had a little dog,
  A terrier, an Irish terrier,
  I wonder if the landlord would object."
  And thinking thus, I rose and sighed, and bent
  To take my boots off.  Had a mouse appeared
  I could have loved it in my loneliness.
  Had but the humblest cockroach shown his head,
  I think I would have said "Good-night" to it.

  This too (I give it you for what it's worth):
  Next morning, passing through St James's Park,
  A morning for the gods, all blue and white,
  I heard what, strictly, should have been a skylark,
  (But, probably, was quite a common bird)
  Offering up its very soul to heaven.
  Then suddenly I stopped and cried, "Oh, Lord!
  Oh, Lord!" I cried, "I wish it were the spring."

  * * * * * * *

  So there you have it.  Now it's off my chest.
  Just for one moment you upset me slightly,
  Disturbed my usual calm serenity,
  Got in my head, and set me vainly wishing
  For April, and the country, and one other...
  But that is over.  I am whole again.
  Good-bye!  I shall not send this letter now.
  I find I have forgotten you already.




RETROSPECT

Looking back on the past year I can see that it has been (as usual)
one of noble endeavour--frequently frustrated, but invariably well
meant.  In accordance with the custom of the newspapers I have set
down here its record of achievement in the different provinces of
art, bicycling and the like; and I offer this to the public in full
confidence of its sympathy and appreciation.



ART

We have had our photographs taken for the first time for many years,
and if the result isn't art I don't know what is.  The photographer
said: "Would you like them _en silhouette_ or straight-fronted?"  We
said in French that we had thought of _carte-de-visite_.  The result
is a sort of three-quarter face with one wing forward, and the man
insists that we must have looked like that once.  The only other
achievement in the world of art is a moleskin waistcoat of some
distinction.  I had no idea that moles were that colour, but the man
swore that when you had taken the feathers out of them you found
quite a different coloured skin underneath.  As he has been there and
I haven't, I cannot argue with him.  Altogether a good year for art.



BICYCLING

At the beginning of the year our eldest brother sold our bicycle for
a sovereign and gave the sovereign to our second brother.  A bad year
for bicycling therefore.



SCIENCE

(I thought for the moment science began with a C, which is why it
comes in here.)

Several important discoveries have been made in the year.  For
instance, the small white raspberries in tapioca pudding are _meant_
to be there; you always thought that they had got in from some other
dish, when the cook wasn't looking.  And when your watch gains a foot
you don't put the regulator to A because it is advancing, but to R
because you want to retard it.  (Or else the other way round--I have
forgotten again.  Anyhow, I found out that I had been doing it
wrong.)  Another discovery made in the early part of the year was the
meaning of the phrase "Bank Rate Unchanged," but that is too
technical to explain here.  A record year for science.



FINANCE

The old system of keeping no accounts and never filling in the
counterfoils of cheques again answered admirably.



GAMES

The past year marks an epoch in the history of games.  We have
retired from football and are not the cricketer we were; but, on the
other hand, we have made immense strides in croquet.  We improve
slowly at billiards.  In November we potted the red rather neatly,
and everybody said, "There's no getting away from that--he _must_
have meant it."  As a matter of fact ... but it would spoil it to
explain.  In the latter part of the year we could have shown you a
trick or two at tennis.  That is all, except that I can no longer
jump the ancestral herbaceous border, as the gardener keeps on
discovering.



HYDROSTATICS

Archimedes' Principle--that if a heavy body gets into a cold bath
quickly an equal amount of water gets out on to the mat quickly--was
demonstrated daily, to the complete dissatisfaction of the man on the
floor below, who, however, made a still more important discovery in
this interesting branch of dynamics--viz. that water does not find
its own level, but prefers something about ten feet lower down.



INDIGO

Indigo has maintained its _status quo_ throughout the year.  There
have been occasions during this time when we had almost decided to be
an Indigo planter in Assam rather than stick it in this beastly
country.  On each occasion the weather cleared just before we had
packed the sandwiches.



MUSIC

Space and time alike fail us to tell of our notable triumphs upon the
pianola in the year that has just elapsed.  We have played the Sonata
Appassionata and "Shuffling Jasper" with equal _verve_ and
_chiaroscuro_.  The fruitness and nutty flavour of our rendering of
Remorse--Valse Tzigane, No. 1,192,999, kindly return by the end of
the month--will never be forgotten.  In July one of the black notes
stuck down and refused to budge for some time; but we got it up at
last with a potted-meat opener.  I say, I don't think much of Liszt.
He has pace and staying power and is a good strider; quite a useful
man over timber he might be; but he is a little lacking in--what
shall I say, _Adagio con molto expressione ma non troppo_, if you
know what I mean.



PETS

Walter, the white mouse, perished in May.  The doctor said it was too
much exercise on an empty--well, he put it rather crudely.  You know
what doctors are.  And you know how white mice _will_ exercise.  The
tailor said Walter was too small to make up into a white waistcoat,
even an evening one, and that he would be hopeless as a tie.  I
advertised for a white mole, but they seem to be rare.  Altogether it
was a sad year for pets.



THOUGHT

Perhaps the past year was, above all, a year for thought.  To the
pursuit of thought we devoted many days in many positions.  Some
people would find it impossible to think properly immediately after
breakfast but we proved that, given a sufficiently comfortable chair,
the impossible could be achieved, that one could be as thoughtfully
busy in the morning as in the afternoon.



XYLONITE

We did not do any of this.



YCLEPT

We were yclept every morning punctually at eight (and arose
punctually at nine thirty) throughout the year.



ZEUGMA

I suppose you thought I couldn't do X. Y. Z.  Well, this is just to
show you.  In the ordinary way, of course, I should have referred to
the zeugma under music.  We ordered a low-strung one last month, but
it has not yet been delivered.

* * * * * * *

So much for my record of the past year.  Reading it over now I feel
that I have not spent the last twelve months in vain.  At the end of
them I can say truthfully that I am, if not a year wiser, at least a
year older, a year fatter.  And still a happy bachelor.




LETTERS TO CHARLES


I

DEAR CHARLES,--Can you lend me a penny?  I have just been making up
my accounts for the day (the idea occurred to me suddenly; it's a
thing I have never done before) and I am seven shillings and a penny
out.  The seven shillings I don't mind, but the penny worries me
dreadfully.  I think that if you lent me another one I should
gradually be able to settle down again.

I lie when I say I have never made up accounts before--I did it on
one memorable occasion years and years ago.  When John and I were at
school we had certain expenses, such as subscriptions to the mission
and to various house competitions, train fares, masters' wedding
presents, haircutting and so on, which did not come out of our pocket
money or tips, but which were specially sent to us from home.  To
save the trouble of this we were given, at the beginning of one term,
five pounds to see us through all these expenses, with the
understanding that we were to account for it afterwards.

"Afterwards" meant the holidays, which (to begin with) were a long
way off.  As they came nearer we consoled ourselves with the thought
that the required "account" was a mere formality which would probably
not be insisted upon; the actual money had been spent--which after
all was the main thing, the idea of the whole proceeding, so to say.
To wish to linger over the details of its gradual dissolution would
be morbid.  However to our horror a day did come in the holidays when
we were peremptorily ordered to provide our account and to hand over
the balance.

There is, as you know, Charles, never any difficulty about providing
an account--the trouble is to hand over the balance.  In our case the
balance was exactly nothing, we had not a penny in our pockets.  The
money had been spent all right, an unusual number of masters having
been married that term (some of them for the third or fourth time in
the year), but we could not possibly make up our accounts so that to
a farthing the two sides balanced.  It would look so unnatural.  How
could we march solemnly into the library and say "By a perfectly
amazing coincidence the money you gave us was just precisely the
amount which the circumstances demanded.  There is no balance."

It was a very hot afternoon, and we were unhappy.  The matter of the
accounts was not the only shadow which hung over us.  John had a fox
terrier--so had I; but whereas my dog was a Little Englander, and
stayed at home, John's was an Imperialist, who roamed the country.
He had disappeared again the night before, and had been observed in
the morning in a village three miles away.  Thither toiled John in
search of him that hot afternoon, his heart torn between his love for
his dog and his duty to his parents.  And Rags and I remained at home
to see what we could make of finance.

We made but little of it.  The more I thought of it, the more
impossible it seemed to say that every penny (no more, no less) of
the five pounds had been spent properly.  One idea I had which
touched genius--namely, to furnish an account for five pounds ten
(say) and point out that the balance was owing to us.  Ours was
always a great family for ideas.  But you see the weak spot,
Charles--that we hadn't demanded the ten shillings long ago.

And then John returned.  No, he had not found his dog, but he had
found a shilling in the road.  He had spent (he simply had to spend,
he said) a penny ha'penny on refreshment, but the tenpence ha'penny
he had brought back joyfully.  And in the evening a beautiful account
(on the double-entry system) and tenpence ha'penny balance were
handed over with ceremony.

So much for finance, Charles.  Now I've got some news for you.  _I've
just had a nephew_!  (Uncle doing well.)  Did you know?  Look here,
we'll arrange a sporting match between him and your son over hurdles
for 1922.  Your boy will still be a year older, but, bless you, I
don't mind that.  My nephew is so ugly at present that I feel he must
be intended for the highest honours at something.  Probably hurdles.
Of course if either of us perishes in the meantime the nominations
become void.  ("The nominations become void"--did you notice that?
Quite the sportsman.)

What sort of weather are you having?  I ask because the weather
differs according to the locality, and down at Castle Bumpbrook it
may be quite fine, while it is raining here, and _vice versa_.  Why
is this?  Why shouldn't the weather be the same everywhere?
Something to do with the solstices, I believe.  What is a solstice?
(I have asked you no end of questions in this letter, and I don't
suppose you will answer one of them.)

Do you grow oranges at Castle?  (Forgive the familiarity.)  Exhausted
by my divings into the remote and wicked past, I have just eaten
about six.  I get through quite a dozen a day.  The fact is I heard a
doctor say the other night that they were extremely good for the
complexion--or else extremely bad, I couldn't quite catch which.  He
spoke very indistinctly.  It was a pity that I missed what seems to
have been the important word; it wouldn't have mattered so much about
the "extremely."  However, I go on eating them, and if one day you
turn up in town and find me a full-blown mulatto, you will know that
the word was "bad."  I shall become a sort of test case, like
"Wreford _v._ Partington (1883)."  Eminent people will refer to me.
How nice to be referred to--not that it would be the first time.
"Refer to drawer," I remember on my cheques at Cambridge.  That, sir,
was me.

Do you know, I made up the names Wreford and Partington on the spur
of the moment.  The names are simple enough, but I think the
combination is wonderful.  There must have been such a case in 1883.
Who do you think Wreford was?  I fancy he was a small chandler, and
he fell down the coal shoot of Partington's in Cannon Street.  James
Partington, the senior partner, said (fairly enough) that a great
firm like his, which had branches all over England (including
Norwich), must have coal some time, if they were to cope successfully
with increasing foreign competition, which, owing to the present
Gov----  Oh no, this was 1883; I forgot.  Well, anyhow, he said they
must have coal.  Wreford retorted that he didn't mind their putting
coal down their shoot, but when it came to including respectable
citizens of London----

You remember the excitement when the case came on?  We were only
babies then, but I have a recollection that my nurse was a
pro-Partington.  Wreford won, but as he was heavily fined for having
knowingly caused a crowd to collect it did him little good, poor man.

Good-bye.  Write to me soon and tell me all about Castle Bumpbrook.
What a glorious name.  I often say it to myself.  It is the only
strong language I ever use now.



II

DEAR CHARLES,--Many thanks for your definition of a solstice.  Is it
really?  Fancy!  By answering one of my questions you become a unique
correspondent.  Nobody else answers questions in a letter.
Sometimes, of course, one is asked, "What train are you coming down
by on Saturday?  Let me know at once."  But the proper thing to do in
such a case is to wait till Saturday afternoon, and then wire "Just
missed the two twenty-two.  Hope to catch the next."  Questions in
letters are mostly rhetorical; which is why I ask you, How, oh, how
could you have the nerve to head your paper "Castle Bumpbrook," and
fill it with arguments against the Budget?  It is hardly decent.  You
know, I doubt if you ought even to have heard of the Budget at Castle
Bumpbrook.

What I expect from you is pleasant gossip about the miller's
daughter.  Is she engaged yet to the postman?  Has the choir begun to
practise the Christmas anthem?  When does Mrs Bates' husband come
out?  These are the things you should tell me.  Tell me, too, of your
simple recreations.  Has whist reached Castle Bumpbrook yet?  It is a
jolly game for four.  One person deals and you turn up the last card,
and then the----  But I must send you a book about it.

I have been having a correspondence with my landlord as to what I
should do in case of fire.  Of course, if your little cottage got
alight, you would simply hop out of the window on to the geranium
bed; but it is different in London.  Particularly when you are on the
top floor.  Well, he tells me that I can easily get out on to Mr
Podby's roof next door ... and so home.  This is certainly
comforting, but--Podby!  I don't like it, Charles.  Supposing
anything happened, just think how it would look in the papers.  "The
unfortunate gentleman was last seen upon Mr Podby's roof...."  No, I
shall have to go for the drain-pipe at the back.

Look here, I have two stories to tell you.  One is quite true, the
other isn't.  Which will you have first?  All right, the truth.

When I first came to town I was very--I mean I believed everything I
was told.  One Sunday I met a small but elderly gentleman on the
Embankment, who asked me the way to the German Embassy.  He had the
river to his south, so obviously all the embassies were in the other
direction.  I pointed vaguely towards the north.  He thanked me and
said that----  (By the way, do you prefer _oratio recta_?  I forgot
to ask you.) Well, then, he said:

"The embassies would be shut on a Sunday, hein?"

I said: "Doubtless."

He said: "I am a Professor at Heidelberg.  I have just arrived in
London, and I have no money.  To-morrow I go to my Embassy and get
some.  Meanwhile, could you lend me five shillings?"

Charles, in those days I was very----  Well, I gave him half-a-crown.

He said: "I should like to pay this back to you."

I said: "Quite so.  That is the idea."

"Then would you give me your card, so that I can send you the money
to-morrow?"

Charles, I----  You see, I had just had some cards printed.  They had
"Mr" on for the first time.  I was very----  Well, I gave him one.

That ends the first scene.  An interval of nearly five years elapses,
and we come to last Saturday.  I was walking through the Green Park,
when a small but elderly gentleman came up to me.

He said: "Is this the way to the School of Music?"

I said: "Which one do you want?  There is the Guildhall School, and
the Royal College, and the Royal Academy, and----"

He thought for a moment, and then he said in German the German for
"Do you speak German?" (My dear Charles, I _can't_ spell it).  I said
"Nein."

He considered a little, and said, "Parlez-vous français?"  I
said--(What's the French for "Not very well"?  Well, that's what I
said).

At this his face brightened.  He drew a long breath, and began:

"I am a Professor of Music at Heidelberg----"

Charles, I had to interrupt him.  I simply couldn't help it.  I said;
"Then you owe me half-a-crown."  He stopped, and looked at me with a
sort of sad dignity.  Then he turned round with a sigh and plodded
wearily across the park.  And, oh, I do hope he had better luck with
somebody else, because he has been at it for five years now, and it
must be a heart-breaking life.  His hair had gone quite grey since I
saw him last.

Charles, you do see that that is a true story, don't you?  If I had
been making it up, I should have said that he gave me back my own
card as a reference.  I wonder why he didn't.  I suppose it had got
rather dirty after five years.

Do you want the other one now?  It is the merest anecdote, and Hilda
told it me, and I know it's not true.

She has a cat called "Didums poor little kitty wee, then"; you put
the accent on the "then," and spread it out as long as you can.
Well, Didums, etc., goes about eating moths; a curious diet for a
cat, but I believe it keeps them thin.  He swallowed them whole, you
know, and Hilda told him how cruel it was.  She seems to have spoken
of the sufferings of the imprisoned ones in the most moving terms.
Anyhow she found Didums next day up in her bedroom remorsefully
eating a sealskin coat.

I am surprised at Hilda.  If she is not careful her baby will grow up
a journalist.  I have seen him since he came back from you.  This
time I approached from the west, and I noticed a great difference.
He is certainly a fine child, and as he let me put him to sleep I
love him.  After all, looks don't matter tuppence to a man.  The
great thing is wisdom.  Knowledge comes, but wisdom lingers.  I
remember a General Knowledge Paper in my Mays.  One of the questions
was "Give a list of the chief coaling-stations you would pass on your
way to New Zealand."  The only two I could think of were Cyprus and
Rickett Smith.  I never heard whether I got full marks: probably not.
But since that day knowledge has come for I have a friend in the
Admiralty.  He was a very high wrangler the year I wasn't, and just
as Fisher is the man behind the First Lord, so he is the man behind
Fisher; at least, he tells me so.  And he buys his tobacco by the
knot--or is it the quid?--and plays the Hague Convention at bridge,
and (as I say) knows all the coaling-stations from Cambridge to New
Zealand.

Wisdom Lingers.  What a splendid title for a novel.  You would expect
a fine moral tale, and it would turn out to be the story of the
Lingers family.  Wisdom K. Lingers.  There you have the essence of
successful book-naming.  I hand the idea to you, Charles, in the
certainty that you would steal it anyhow.

Do you know anything about gas?  I buy a lot every week for my
geyser.  You get about 1000 for half-a-crown.  A thousand what?  I
don't know; but I like to take part in these great business
transactions, and I am now writing to ask if they could make it 1200
seeing that I am a regular customer.  No harm in asking.



III

DEAR CHARLES,--Do you truly want me to recommend you something to
read?  Well, why not try the serial story in some ha'penny paper?
There you get a glimpse of the real thing.  I turned idly to "Lepers
in Israel" (or whatever it is called) last night, and found myself
suddenly up to the neck in tragedy.  Lord Billingham ...

Charles, you're a married man, tell me if it really is so.  The
gentle Pamela is urged by a cruel mother to espouse Lord Billingham
for his money's sake.  Lord B. is a vulgar brute, I'm afraid; in any
case Pamela is all for young Prendergast; but one must be sensible,
you know, and money does make a difference, doesn't it?  So she
becomes Lady Billingham; and a year or two later Prendergast comes
back from South Africa to find that it is he who is the real Lord
Billingham after all.  (I got most of this from the "synopsis," which
enables you to start the story now, so I can't say how it was they
overlooked him in the first place.)  It would be extremely cruel (you
see that, Charles?) to talk about it, because Pamela would then
become plain Mrs Stubbs, and no money at all; so Prendergast decides
to say nothing to anybody.  But he was reckoning without Mrs
Trevelyan, no less.  Mrs Trevelyan finds out the secret, and
threatens Prendergast that she will tell everybody that he is the
real Lord Billingham unless he marries her.  So of course he has to.

It is at this moment that we meet Captain Pontifax.  Captain Pontifax
is in love with Mrs Trevelyan, at least he thinks he is, and he says
that if she doesn't marry him he will let on about what happened to
Mr Trevelyan, who was supposed to have died of old age.  At the same
time the news gets out that Prendergast is really Lord Billingham,
and so Pamela does become Mrs Stubbs; and, as Prendergast cannot
honourably withdraw from the alliance he is about to contract with
Mrs Trevelyan, it looks as though she is going to be Lady Billingham.
But on the eve of the wedding a body is found at the bottom of the
old chalk quarry....  Whose? ...

What I want to hear from you, Charles, is, Do people always get
married for this sort of reason?  Are you really the Duke of Norfolk,
and did Kitty discover your secret and threaten to disclose it?  Oh,
you coward!  I don't mind anybody knowing that I am the true Earl
Billingham.

About the body.  We shall know to-morrow.  I think it's Captain
Pontifax myself, but I will send you a telegram.

Are you an authority on dress?  A man got into my carriage on the
District to-day wearing a top-hat, a frock-coat, and brown boots.  Is
that right?  I ask it seriously, because the point I want to discover
is this: Supposing you suddenly found that you had nothing in the
house but brown boots and a frock-coat, would a bowler or a topper be
the better way out of it?

You see the idea, Charles.  If you add a bowler then the thing you
have to explain away is the coat.  I don't quite see how that is to
be managed; you could only put it down to absent-mindedness.  But if
you add a topper then you have only the brown boots to account for.
This could be done in a variety of ways--a foggy morning, a sudden
attack of colour-blindness, or that your mother asked you to wear the
thickest ones, dear, and never mind about the silly fashion.  It is
an interesting point which has never been dealt with properly in the
etiquette-books.  You and I are agreed upon the topper, it seems.

I went to a play last Tuesday.  It was not bad, but the funniest
scene happened right at the beginning, when I watched an American buy
a seat at the box-office.  They gave him J13., and he only discovered
it after he had paid for it, and had put his change carefully away.
Do you know, Charles, he nearly cried.  The manager assured him there
was nothing in it; people sat there every night, and were heard of
again.  It was no good.  He got his money back, and went away looking
quite miserable.  Isn't it childish?  I am going to be married on
Friday, 13th May, just to show.  When is that?  Sickening if it's not
for years and years.  I have a patent calendar somewhere which tells
you the date for any year up to 1928.  I never know why it should
stop there; something to do with the golden number getting too big.
It won't go backwards either, which is a pity, because I have always
wanted to know on what day of the week I was born.  Nobody will tell
me.  It was one of the lucky days I am sure.  How can I find out?

(_To-morrow._)--I have just sent you a telegram to say that it was
Sir Richard Tressider's body.  Strange that you hadn't thought of
him.  Charles, I felt very shy in the post office.  Yes, about Castle
Bumpbrook.  She didn't believe there was such a place; I offered to
bet.  We went through the Telegraph Directory together.  Do you know,
you come in the Castles, not in the Bumps at all.  (Put me among the
Bumps.)  Something ought to be done about it.  I always thought
Castle was your Christian name, kind of.

Yes, it was Sir Richard's corpse.  It occurs to me now that you will
get this letter a day after the telegram.  How did I put it?

"Body believed to be that of Sir Richard Tressider.  Death certified
as by drowning.  Inspector Stockley suspects foul play."

An elevenpenny touch, Charles, and I never signed it, and you'll
wonder what on earth it's all about.  Probably you will dismiss it as
a joke, and that would be elevenpence thrown away.  That cannot be
allowed.  You can get a telegram repeated at half-price, can't you?
I think I shall go and have a fivepenny-ha'penny repeat.

I say, what are you doing about the weather?  Are you taking it lying
down?  I want to sign a petition, or write to my M.P. (haven't got
one, then I shall write to yours), humbly showing that it's the
rottenest do there's ever been.  Do you remember the story (it comes
in Gesta Romanorum, or should) of the man who built a model of
another man and threw things at it, and the other man sat in a bath
with a mirror in his hand and whenever the first man threw he ducked
under the water.  If he got under in time his enemy missed, and it
was all right.  Otherwise he was killed.  Well, I am going to rig up
a Negretti in my room, and throw boots at it, and if the original has
to spend all his time in a cold bath ducking, I _think_, Charles, we
shall get some warmer weather soon.

  "Oh, how this spring of love resembleth
  The uncertain glory of an April day."


Charles, in your courting days was she ever as cold to you as this?



IV

DEAR CHARLES,--Don't talk to me about politics, or the weather, or
anything; I have lost my tobacco-pouch.  Oh, Charles, what is to be
done?  It is too sad.

I bought it in a little shop at Ambleside, my first, my only friend,
on the left-hand side as you go down the hill.  It was descended from
a brown crocodile in the male line, and a piece of indiarubber in the
female; at least, I suppose so, but the man wouldn't say for certain.
He called it a trade term.  I smoked my first pipe from it--on the
top of Scafell Pike, with all England at my feet.  The ups and downs
it has seen since then--the sweet-smelling briars it has met!  In
sickness and in sorrow it comforted me; in happiness it kept me calm.
Old age came upon it slowly, beautifully.  In these later years how
many men have looked at it with awe; how many women have insulted it
and--stitched its dear sides together!

It passed away on a Saturday, Charles; this scion of the larger
Reptilia, which sprang into being among the mountain-tops, passed
away in a third-class carriage at Dulwich!  The irony of it!  Even
Denmark Hill----  But it matters not now I have lost it.  Nor can I
bear that another should take its place.  Perhaps in a year or two
... I cannot say ... but for the present I make shift with an
envelope.

Two thoughts sustain me.  First, that no strange eye will recognise
it as a tobacco-pouch, no strange hand (therefore) dip into it.
Secondly, that the Fates, which have taken from me my dearest
possession, must needs have some great happiness in store for me.

Charles, I perceive you are crying; let us turn to more cheerful
things.  Do you play croquet?  I have just joined a croquet club
(don't know why), and one of the rules is that you have to supply
your own mallet.  How do you do this?  Of course, I know that
ultimately I hand a certain sum of money to a shopman, and he gives
me a very awkward parcel in exchange; but what comes before that?  I
have often bought a bat, and though I have not yet selected one which
could make runs, I can generally find something which is pretty
comfortable to carry back into the pavilion.  But I have never chosen
a mallet.  What sort of weight should it be, and is it a good thing
to say it "doesn't come up very well"?  I have, they tell me, a
tendency to bowness in the legs and am about a million round the
biceps; I suppose all that is rather important?  Perhaps they have
their mallets classified for different customers, and you have only
to describe yourself to them.  I shall ask for a _Serviceable mallet
for a blond_.  "Serviceable" means that if you hit the ground very
hard by accident it doesn't break; some of these highly strung
mallets splinter up at once, you know.  As a matter of fact, you
can't miss the ball at croquet, can you?  I am thinking of golf.
What about having a splice with mine; is that done much?  I don't
want to go on to the ground looking a perfect ass with no splice,
when everybody else has two or three.  Croquet is a jolly game,
because you don't have to worry about what sort of collar you'll
wear; you just play in your ordinary things.  All the same, I shall
have some spikes put in my boots so as not to slip.  I once took in
to dinner the sister of the All England Croquet Champion.  I did
really.  Unfortunately I didn't happen to strike her subject, and she
didn't strike mine--_Butterflies_.  How bitterly we shall regret that
evening--which was a very jolly one all the same.  Here am I, not
knowing a bit how to select a mallet, and there possibly is she,
having just found the egg of the Purple Emperor, labelling it in her
collection as that of the Camberwell Beauty.  Let this be a lesson to
all of us.

Charles, I feel very silly to-night; I must be what they call "fey,"
which is why I ask you--How would you like to be a pedigree goat?  I
have just seen in an evening paper a picture of Mr Brown "with his
pedigree goat."  Somehow it had never occurred to me that a goat
could have a pedigree; but I see now that it might be so.  I think if
I had to be a goat at all I should like to be a pedigree one.  In a
way, I suppose, every goat has a pedigree of some kind; but you would
need to have a pretty distinguished one to be spoken of as a P.G.
Your father, Charles, would need to have had some renown among the
bearded ones; your great-uncle must have been of the blood.  And if
this were so, I should, in your place, insist upon being photographed
as a pedigree goat "with Mr Brown."  Don't stand any nonsense about
that.

If I ever have a goat, and you won't let me call it Charles, I shall
call it David.  My eldest brother, you, know, was christened David,
and called so for a year; but at the end of that time we had a
boot-and-knife-boy who was unfortunately named David too.  (I say
"we," but I was still in the Herebefore myself.)  This led to great
confusion.  When the nurse called for David to come and take his
bottle, it was very vexing to find the other David turning up with a
brown shoe in one hand and a fish-knife in the other.  Something had
to be done.  The baby was just beginning to take notice; the leather
polisher had just refused to.  In the circumstances the only thing
was to call the baby by his second name.

Two or three years passed rapidly, and I arrived.  Just as this
happened, the boot-boy took the last knife and went.  Now was our
chance.  My second name had already been fixed; it was immediately
decided that my first should be David.  The new boot-boy didn't mind
a bit; everybody else seemed delighted ... and then someone
remembered that in ten years' time I should be going to school.

Yes, Charles, the initials D.A.M....  You know what boys are; it
would have been very awkward.

And so now you see why I am going to call my pedigree goat David.



V

DEAR CHARLES,--I am learning to dance the minuet.  I say "the"
instead of "a" because I am sure mine is a very particular kind of
one.  You start off with three slides to the left, then three to the
right, and then you stop and waggle the left leg.  After that you bow
to your partner in acknowledgement of the interest she has taken in
it all, and that ends the first figure.  There are lots more, but one
figure at a time is my motto.  At present I slide well, but I am a
moderate waggler.

_Why_ am I doing this, you ask.  My dear Charles, you never know when
a little thing like a minuet will turn out useful.  The time may well
come when you will say to yourself, "Ah, if only I had seized the
opportunity of learning that when I was young, how ... etc."  There
were once two men who were cast ashore on a desert island.  One of
them had an axe, and a bag of nails, and a goat, and a box of
matches, and a barrel of gunpowder, and a keg of biscuits, and a
tarpaulin and some fish-hooks.  The other could only dance the
minuet.  Years rolled by; and one day a ship put in at that island
for water.  As a matter of fact, there was no water there, but they
found two skeletons.  Which shows that in certain circumstances
proficiency in the minuet is as valuable as an axe, and a bag of
nails, and a goat and a box of matches, and all the other things that
I mentioned just now.  So I am learning in case.

My niece, aged twenty months (do I bore you?), has made her first
joke: let it be put on record and handed down to those that come
after.  She walked into the study, where her father was reading and
her mother writing.  They agreed not to take any notice of her, in
order to see what would happen.  She marched up to her father,
stroked his face, and said, "Hallo, daddy!"  No answer.  She gazed
round; and then went over to the writing-desk.  "Hallo, mummy!"  Dead
silence.  She stood for a moment looking rather puzzled.  At last she
went back to her father, bent down and patted his slippers and said,
"Hallo, boots!"  Then she walked quite happily out of the room.

However, we won't bother about her, because I have something much
more exciting to tell you.  M'Gubbin has signed on for the something
Rovers for next season!  I saw it in the paper; it had a little
paragraph all to itself.  This is splendid news--I haven't been so
happy about anything for a long time.  Whaur's your Wully Gaukrodger
now?  Let us arrange a Pentathlon for them.  I'll back M'G., and you
can hold the towel for Gauk.  My man would win at football of course,
and yours at cricket, but the other three events would be exciting.
Chess, golf and the minuet, I think.  I can see M'Gubbin
sliding--_one_, two, three, _one_, two three--there, now he's
waggling his left leg.  Charles, you're a goner--hand over the stakes.

Look here, I smoke too much, at least I have been lately.  Let's give
it up, Charles.  I'll give it up altogether for a week if you will.
Did you know that you can allay the craving for tobacco by the
judicious use of bull's-eyes?  ("Allay" is the word.)  You carry a
bag of bull's-eyes with you--I swear this is true, I saw it in the
press--and whenever you feel a desire to smoke you just pop a
bull's-eye in your mouth.  In a little while, they say, your taste
for tobacco--and I imagine for everything else--is quite gone.  This
ought to be more widely known, and then your host would say, "Try one
of these bull's-eyes, won't you?  I import them direct," and you
would reply, "Thanks very much, but I would rather have one of my
own, if I may."  "Have a bull's-eye, if you like," your partner would
say at a dance.  Of course, too, they would have special bull's-eye
compartments in trains; that would be jolly.  But it would ruin the
stage.  The hero who always lights a cigarette before giving off his
best epigram--I don't know what he'd do.  You see he couldn't ...
well, he'd have to wait such a time.

Why are they called bull's-eyes?  I don't believe I've ever seen a
bull's-eye really close.  If you look a bull in the eye he doesn't go
for you.  Which eye?  He might be a left-handed bull; you'd look at
the wrong eye; then where would you be?

The world is too much with me, Charles, but all the same I've just
ordered a flannel suit which will make Castle Bumpbrook stare.  Sort
of purplish; and it makes up very smart, and they can do me two pairs
of trousers in it, whatever that means.  I should have thought they
could have done me as many pairs as I liked to ask for, but it seems
not.  They only print a limited edition, and then destroy the
original plates, so that nobody else can walk about looking like me.
I asked the man if he thought it would play croquet well, and he
said, yes.  By the way, I have learnt some more about croquet since I
wrote last.  First, then, you can go round in one, if you're
frightfully good.  I should like to go round in one; I suppose that
would be the record?  Secondly, if you're wired from all the balls,
"so that you can't get a clear shot at every part of any one of
them," you go into baulk, and have another turn.  This must happen
pretty often, because you could never have a clear shot at the back
of a ball, unless you went right round the world the other way, and
that would be too risky, besides wasting so much time.  No, I can see
there's a lot to learn in the game, but patience, Charles, patience.
I shall go round in one yet.



VI

DEAR CHARLES,--Are you coming up to town this month?  If you do we
will make a journey into Shepherd's Bush together, and see the
Exhibition.

I am afraid I have been doing Shepherd's Bush an injustice all these
years.  John and I once arranged a system of seven hells, in which we
put all the men we hated.  Nobody known personally to either of us
was eligible (so your name never came up, dear Charles), which meant
that they had to be filled with people in the public eye.  The
seventh division contained two only: one a socialist, who is thought
a good deal of--by himself, I mean; the other a novelist who only
writes about superior people who drop their "g's."  The punishment
for this class was simple; perpetual life in an open boat on a choppy
sea, smoking Virginian cigarettes--John's idea chiefly, he being a
bad sailor.  The doom decreed for the unfortunates in the fifth
class--now I am coming to the point of this reminiscence--was more
subtle: they had to live at Shepherd's Bush, and go to a musical
comedy every afternoon.

There were four men in the fifth class.  Three of them we need not
bother about, but the latest arrival was a certain cleric who
advertised a good deal.  One day we met somebody who knew him well.
We broke the sad news to him gently, and he was much distressed about
it.  He asked if there was any hope.  We replied that if his friend
turned over a new leaf, and kept his name out of the papers for a
bit, he might in time be promoted into the fourth division--where,
every day, you watched Sussex play Essex at Leyton and had mutton
sandwiches for lunch.  He was so glad to hear this that he made us
promise to let him know when any such step was meditated.
Accordingly, after a month of perfect quiet on the part of the
reverend gentleman we sent his friend a telegram: "Bernard left
Shepherd's Bush by the nine o'clock steamer this morning."

And now it looks as if the Bush were much more of a place than we
thought.

Every week or so I have an inspiration; and I had one yesterday, when
the thought struck me suddenly that it would be a good idea to buy
some postcards.  You get them at the post office--six stout ones for
ninepence.  Oh no, that can't be right--nine stout ones for sixpence.
I shouldn't think a postcard would ever get too stout--not
unpleasantly so, I mean; you hardly ever see an obese postcard.  I
don't believe I have used one of any dimensions for ten years; yet
they are such handy things when you want to say "Right O" or don't
quite know whether you are "very truly" or "sincerely."  The postcard
touch is hereditary.  Some families have it, ours hasn't.  But now it
is going to begin.  Tomorrow I buy as many stout ones for sixpence as
they will give me.

Talking of buying croquet mallets and things--I went into a little
tobacconist's a little while ago (What for?  Guess), and while I was
there a man came in and ordered a pipe, two ounces of bird's-eye, and
a box of matches.  I wanted to tell him that you really required a
rubber pouch as well, and a little silver thing for pressing down the
tobacco.  It must want some nerve to start straight off like that,
especially at his age--forty or so.  I am about to play golf
seriously, and I shall certainly get my clubs at different shops--a
driver at the Stores, a putter in Piccadilly, a niblick (what's a
niblick?  Anyhow, I shall have several of them, because of the
name)--and several niblicks in Fleet Street.  It would be too absurd
to buy a dozen assorted clubs, one ball, a jersey and a little red
flag all at the same place.

Yes, I should love to come down and play cricket for Castle
Bumpbrook, and many thanks for asking me.  I don't make runs
nowadays, Charles, but if you feel that the mere presence of a
gentleman from Lunnon would inspire and, as it were, give tone to the
side, then I am at your service.  You do say "Lunnon" in the country,
don't you, when you mean London?  And you say "bain't" too.  How
jolly!  "I bain't a bowler, zur"--and you pronounce the "b-o-w" as if
it were a curtsey and not a cravat.  "Put Oi----"  It's no good.  I
can't keep it up.  Put me in last and I'll make 3 not out, and that
will bring me top of the averages.  (If you divide 3 by 0 you get an
awful lot, you know.)  You have an average bat, I suppose?  I like
them rather light--or I would take the money, whichever would be more
convenient.

I have just written myself a letter, pleasantly standoffish, but not
haughty.  The reason is that I have my doubts about the post office,
so I am giving them a test.  My address, as you have discovered, is
an awkward one.  There are nine distinct ways of getting it wrong,
and most people try two or three of them.  But the letters do get
here eventually, after (I expect) a good deal of sickness on the part
of the postman.  What I am beginning to wonder now is whether a
letter with the _right_ address would arrive; I fancy that the chief
of the detective department would suspect a trap, and send it
somewhere else; and, as I am certain that I have never received one
or two letters which I ought to have had, I am writing to myself to
see.

It is a great art, that of writing nicely to yourself; to say enough,
yet not too much.  When John was getting engaged, he wrote to himself
every day.  Before he started doing this he used to spend hours
sitting and wondering whether the postman had been.  The few letters
he had had from her came by the eight-thirty post.  At eight-fifteen
he began to look out; nothing happened.  An awful quarter of an hour
followed.  Eight-thirty--no postman's knock; never mind, perhaps he's
late.  Eight-thirty-five--well, it _is_ rather a busy time; besides
he may have fallen down.  Eight-forty--one ray of light left; he did
come once, you remember, at eight-forty-two.
Eight-forty-five--despair.  A half-an-hour's agony, you observe,
Charles.  Then he thought of writing to himself in time for that
delivery.  The result was that he remained quite calm, knowing that
the postman was bound to come.  "Ah, there he is.  Will there be a
letter from her?  Yes--no."  You see?  Your heart in your mouth for
five seconds only.

I never saw any of these letters.  But I should say that at the
beginning they were sympathetic--"Buck up, it's all right"--or
hopeful--"Never mind, she'll write to-morrow"; later on they would
become cynical--"Done in the eye again.  What on earth do you
expect?"; and, finally, I expect, insulting--"You silly ass; chuck
it." ... Then, of course, she wrote.

Good-bye.  Don't forget I am going to play for you.  Would it be side
to wear flannels?  White boots would be a bit lofty, anyhow.  Then I
shall wear one brown pad on the right leg.



VII

DEAR CHARLES,--Many thanks for your letter.  Don't side just because
you get up at six o'clock, and feed the cow, or shave the goat, or
whatever it is.  Other people get up early too.  For the last few
weeks I have sprung out of bed at seven-thirty.  (I always "spring"
out--it is so much more classy.)  But I doubt if I can keep it up.

The truth is that I have just made an unhappy discovery.  I was under
the impression that my man's name was Turley; I should say my third
of a man, because I share with him two others, but anyhow I thought
his whole name was Turley.  So I used to write nice little notes,
beginning, "If you're waking, call me, Turley," and leave them about
for him.  He invariably woke at seven and read them--and came and
called me, mother dear.  Of course I had to get up.  Well, I have now
heard that his name is really Holland, which makes all the
difference.  It would be absurd to write him any more notes of that
kind.  My one satisfaction is that I can claim to own a third of
Holland, which is about 4000 square miles.  Multiply that by 640 and
you get it in acres.  Altogether the landowner.

Moreover, Charles, my lad, you are not the one person who knows
things about animals.  You may be on terms of familiarity with the
cow and the goat, but these are not the only beasts.  What
acquaintance, for example, have you with reptiles?  The common
newt--do you know anything about _him_?  No.  Well, then, now I'll
tell you.

When I was seven and John was eight, we went to a naturalist's in
Hampstead to inquire the price of newts.  They were threepence each,
not being quite in season.  We bought sixpennyworth; the man put them
into a paper bag for us, and we took them up on the Heath to give
them a gallop.  When we opened the bag we found _three_ newts inside.
It seemed impossible that the thing could have happened naturally, so
we went back to the shop to explain to the man that he had made a
mistake.  However, he hadn't; he had merely given us one newt
discount.  (Remember that when next you're buying them.)  Well, we
returned to the Heath, and they showed their paces.  Now the newt is
an amphibious animal (Greek); he is as much at ease in the bathroom
as on the mat.  So when we got them home we arranged to try them in
our bath.

This is where you cry.  For a time all went well.  They dived, swam
(back and front), trod water, returned to life when apparently
drowned, and so forth.  Then John pulled up the waste-pipe.  He says
now that he did it inadvertently, but I fancy that he wanted to see
what would happen.  What did happen was that they got into the
whirlpool and disappeared.  We turned on both the hot and cold taps
to see if they would come back, but they didn't.  Apparently you
don't.  We rushed into the garden to see if they would return by the
drain-pipe with the rainwater, but not they.  Only the paper bag was
left to us ... and (to this day I cannot recall it without a tear) it
was John who popped it.

Charles, we never saw those newts again.  Crusoe, Cleaver and
Robinson were their names.  Robinson and Crusoe they were to have
been; and when the third came, and seemed to take a fancy to
Robinson, we called him Cleaver.  Where are they now?  In the mighty
Thames somewhere, I suppose.  So, Charles, if ever you are near the
river, keep a friendly eye open for them, will you?  They may be a
little wild now, but they were good newts in their day.

We had a _Buforium_ too in our time, you must know.  I have just made
that word up, and it means a place where you keep toads.  In our case
it was the sink.  The toad, as you may not have realised, has no
vomerine or maxillary teeth, but he _has_ got a distinct tympanum.
However, what I really wanted to say was that the toad has a pyriform
tongue of incredible length, by means of which he catches his
prey--thus differing from the frog, which leaps at 'em.  We used to
station a toad opposite one of the walls of the sink--of the
_Buforium_--and then run his breakfast down the side.  Sometimes it
would be a very long centipede, and then you could have one toad for
each end; or a----  What brutes little boys are; I'm not going to
tell you any more about toads.  (Except to say that his omosternum is
generally missing.  That must be very annoying.)

Did I ever talk to you about hedgehogs?  We kept no end of them, but
Peter was the only one who stayed.  He used to live in the scullery,
so as to see that no black-beetles got about.  One night the cook
woke up suddenly and remembered that she had left the scullery tap
running.  So she jumped out of bed and ran downstairs, not even
stopping to put on slippers....

She was a very heavy woman....  No, Peter wasn't hurt much; but she
refused to have him in the kitchen again.

This is a very zoological letter, but I just wanted to show you that
you weren't the only one.  Time fails me to tell you of a mole which
we put in the geranium-bed, of a certain kind of caterpillar from
which we caught nettlerash, of a particularly handsome triton which
we kept in a tank with a crab, giving them fresh and salt water on
alternative days, so that there should be no quarrelling.  It is
enough if I have made it clear that one does not need to have Castle
Bumpbrook on one's notepaper in order to commune with nature.

I want two wedding presents--I don't mean for myself.  What do you
suggest?  I bar anything for the table.  Newly married couples might
do nothing but eat to judge from the things they get given them.  At
present I hesitate between the useful--as, for instance, twenty
thousand cubic feet of gas--and the purely ornamental--say, an
antimacassar.  "Mr and Mrs Samuel Jones--a towel-horse": you never
see that, do you?  And yet you could pay anything for a pure-bred
one, and they are very useful.  The bride always wears "valuable old
Honiton lace, the gift of her aunt."  Otherwise it's not legal.
Kitty never had an aunt, had she?  Then you aren't properly married,
Charles.  I'm sorry.



VIII

DEAR CHARLES,--A thing has just happened to me, which really only
happens to people in jokes.  You would not believe it did I not lay
my hand on my heart--(the heart isn't on the left side, as you
thought, by the way.  It's bang in the middle, only the left auricle
does all the work.  However)--on my heart, and swear that it is true.

I was in the silver department of Liberty's buying some spoons.  Yes,
I fell back on spoons after all.  (Never fall back on a spoon,
Charles, if you can help it.)  It was a hot day and the business of
selection was so exhausting that I took off my hat and gloves, and
laid them on a chair beside me.  When it was all over the man went
off to make out the bill.  I wandered round the place, looking at all
the other things which I wished I had bought instead.  Suddenly a
voice at my side said:

"Can you tell me if this is where you get ladies' jerseys for golf?"

(I told you you had to get a jersey for golf.)

I said: "Oh, do you think that is a good thing?  I rather thought of
spoons myself....  I mean, for a wedding present one does want
something which ... Oh, I beg your pardon....  Yes, I am Mr Liberty.
No liberty at all, madam, I assure you....  This is the silver
department, you know....  Yes, all that white shiny stuff....  Well,
I daresay we could do you one, if you wouldn't mind having the lion
worked on it....  No, we don't charge for the lion....  Or what about
something quite simple in pewter....  Oh, I see....  The art muslin
department would be the nearest thing we have ...  a freer swing,
certainly....  Good-morning."

Well, no, I didn't say that exactly.  Having my hand on the left side
of my heart it would be impossible to pretend that I did.  With the
best intentions in the world, how easy it is, Lucy, to slip from the
rocky path of truth into the crevasse of make-believe.  (Maxim from
"The Fairchild Family.") But really and really, Charles, she did take
me for the shopwalker in the silver department, and she did ask for
ladies' golf jerseys.  What I actually said was: "I'm very sorry, but
I'm afraid I'm only a customer."  And she said, "Oh, I'm so sorry."
And then I put on my hat to show that I had one, and took it off
again to show that I knew my manners, and she went off to the clock
counter, and said she was sorry to trouble the man behind it, but
could he tell her where she went for ladies' jerseys for golf, and he
said he was very sorry, they didn't sell them, but would she like
some clocks on her stockings instead.  Altogether there was a good
deal of sorrow going about.

But not on my part--never.  In common tweeds, to be mistaken for one
of those splendid frock-coated gentleman, and admitted into a lady's
confidence on a question of jerseys, there was glory for you.  I
doubt now if I ought to have gone down to Castle Bumpbrook.  Anyhow,
I should have insisted on all the gate.

What was the gate?  I distinctly saw three small boys hiding behind a
cow.  I suppose they paid all right?  Charles, I did enjoy it
awfully, as I think I have told you several times.  It was good of
you to send me in first with the postman, and as a post-man I am sure
I should love him very much, but he is too fast for me on the
cricket-field.  There wasn't a run there, you know--a simple shot
straight to cover.  I expect he thought it was an express delivery or
late fee stroke, with "Immediate" in the top left-hand corner; or
perhaps the brown pad made him think I was a telegram.  If I ever go
in first with him again I shall register myself.

I gather that the vicar _has_ to bowl at one end all the time, hasn't
he?  In lieu of tithes or something.  Otherwise you get the
Ecclesiastical Commissioners down on you.  He varies his pitch
cleverly, I admit.  His firstly would take any batsman by surprise; I
can't think why it only bounces once--finger-spin, I suppose.  Then,
immediately afterwards, you get his secondly, a high full pitch which
would almost be a wide in a layman.  Yet all the time you feel that
he is only leading up to his sixthly and lastly, my brethren, which
is one of the subtlest half-volleys I have ever seen.

Charles, I love your garden.  It was jolly to see the white flower of
Mrs Sinkins' blameless life again.  I knew Mrs Sinkins as a bulb--I
mean as a boy, and have always regarded her with affection.  I
suppose I shall have to wait for Dorothy Perkins.  She is hardly out
yet.  My love is like a----  Oh, but Dorothy is pink.  Anyhow, she
sweetly smiles in June, and it's just on June, so I'm blowed if I
don't come down to see her next month, whether you ask me or not.
Better send me an invitation for form's sake.

And teach me about flowers, will you?  (And I will tell you about
motor omnibuses.) Why do they all end in "kins"?  It can't be a
coincidence that the only two which I know to talk to should do this.
Funnily enough, motor omnibuses all end in Putney, which shows that
this is a very small world after all, and we needs must love the
highest when we see it.  So near and yet so far.  Doesn't it annoy
you when you meet a person in London whom you last saw in Uganda, and
he fatuously observes that the world is a very small place?  It would
have been a much smaller place, _prima facie_, if you had last seen
him at Leamington.

To return to Dorothy; we have flowers in London, too.  What about the
Temple Show?  I saw a man there with a kodak; I suppose he wanted to
snap the roses as they were growing.  That's the sort of weather we
are on the Embankment!  Oh, but the fruit there!  I wish I were a
prize tomato; what a complexion!









        
            *** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DAY'S PLAY ***
        

    

Updated editions will replace the previous one—the old editions will
be renamed.

Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
States without permission and without paying copyright
royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG™
concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away—you may
do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
license, especially commercial redistribution.


START: FULL LICENSE

THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE

PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK

To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free
distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
Project Gutenberg™ License available with this file or online at
www.gutenberg.org/license.

Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg™
electronic works

1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™
electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your
possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
Project Gutenberg™ electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.

1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
Gutenberg™ electronic works if you follow the terms of this
agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™
electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.

1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the
Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual
works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
that you will support the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting
free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™
works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
Project Gutenberg™ name associated with the work. You can easily
comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg™ License when
you share it without charge with others.

1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
other Project Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no
representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
country other than the United States.

1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:

1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear
prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work
on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the
phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed,
performed, viewed, copied or distributed:

    This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
    other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
    whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
    of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
    at www.gutenberg.org. If you
    are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
    of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
  
1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is
derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase “Project
Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg™
trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.

1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is posted
with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
will be linked to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works
posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
beginning of this work.

1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg™
License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg™.

1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
Gutenberg™ License.

1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format
other than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official
version posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ website
(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain
Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the
full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.

1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works
unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.

1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
provided that:

    • You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
        the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method
        you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
        to the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has
        agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
        Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
        within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
        legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
        payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
        Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
        Section 4, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
        Literary Archive Foundation.”
    
    • You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
        you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
        does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™
        License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
        copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
        all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™
        works.
    
    • You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
        any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
        electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
        receipt of the work.
    
    • You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
        distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works.
    

1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than
are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
forth in Section 3 below.

1.F.

1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
Gutenberg™ collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™
electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
contain “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
cannot be read by your equipment.

1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
DAMAGE.

1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
without further opportunities to fix the problem.

1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’, WITH NO
OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.

1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
remaining provisions.

1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in
accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™
electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b) alteration, modification, or
additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any
Defect you cause.

Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™

Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of
electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
from people in all walks of life.

Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™’s
goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will
remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
and permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future
generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.

Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation

The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
Revenue Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification
number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws.

The Foundation’s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
to date contact information can be found at the Foundation’s website
and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact

Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation

Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
public support and donations to carry out its mission of
increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
status with the IRS.

The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
visit www.gutenberg.org/donate.

While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
approach us with offers to donate.

International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.

Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate.

Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic works

Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
Gutenberg™ concept of a library of electronic works that could be
freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
distributed Project Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of
volunteer support.

Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed
editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
edition.

Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
facility: www.gutenberg.org.

This website includes information about Project Gutenberg™,
including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.